Selected quad for the lemma: book_n

Word A Word B Word C Word D Occurrence Frequency Band MI MI Band Prominent
book_n king_n time_n write_v 5,868 5 5.8753 4 true
View all documents for the selected quad

Text snippets containing the quad

ID Title Author Corrected Date of Publication (TCP Date of Publication) STC Words Pages
A16161 The Protestants evidence taken out of good records; shewing that for fifteene hundred yeares next after Christ, divers worthy guides of Gods Church, have in sundry weightie poynts of religion, taught as the Church of England now doth: distributed into severall centuries, and opened, by Simon Birckbek ... Birckbek, Simon, 1584-1656. 1635 (1635) STC 3083; ESTC S102067 458,065 496

There are 26 snippets containing the selected quad. | View original text

by_o who_o council_n and_o procurement_n the_o peer_n who_o she_o have_v corrupt_v shut_v up_o her_o son_n constantine_n the_o emperor_n in_o the_o palace_n where_o he_o be_v bear_v and_o there_o they_o put_v out_o his_o eye_n so_o that_o he_o die_v of_o heart_n grief_n thus_o they_o put_v out_o the_o eye_n of_o he_o that_o see_v and_o set_v up_o image_n that_o have_v eye_n and_o see_v not_o and_o all_o this_o be_v do_v say_v the_o story_n that_o her_o son_n be_v depose_v she_o may_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d rule_v alone_o but_o this_o decree_n of_o the_o nicen_n synod_n repeal_v by_o that_o at_o frankford_n be_v not_o half_a so_o bad_a as_o that_o which_o follow_v when_o aquinas_n set_v up_o school_n and_o teach_v 4._o that_o the_o crucifix_n an●_n image_n of_o christ_n must_v be_v adore_v with_o the_o same_o honour_n that_o himself_o be_v to_o wit_n with_o latria_n or_o divine_a honour_n whereas_o those_o nice_a father_n haply_o stand_v but_o for_o veneration_n 387._o or_o outward_a reverence_n of_o image_n in_o pass_v by_o they_o or_o stand_v before_o they_o as_o friend_n use_v to_o salute_v or_o embrace_v one_o another_o howsoever_o the_o nicen_n d●●r●e_n be_v reject_v as_o repugnant_a to_o the_o doctrine_n of_o g●ds_n church_n by_o the_o prince_n and_o bishop_n of_o england_n fi●●_n about_o the_o year_n 792._o and_o by_o charles_n th●_n great_a afte●w●rd_n a●d_v by_o the_o bishop_n of_o italy_n france_n and_o germany_n which_o by_o his_o appointment_n be_v gather_v together_o in_o the_o frankford_n council_n in_o the_o year_n 794._o rog●r_n hovede●_n say_v 387._o ●harl●s_v the_o french_a king_n send_v a_o synodal_n into_o britain_n direct_v unto_o he_o from_o constantinople_n in_o the_o which_o book_n many_o thing_n out_o alas_o inconvenient_a an●●epugnant_a to_o right_a faith_n be_v find_v especial_o it_o be_v con●●●med_v a_o most_o by_o the_o unanimous_a consent_n of_o all_o the_o eastern_a doctor_n ●o_o l●sse_v than_o three_o hundred_o or_o more_o that_o image_n ought_v to_o ●e_v worship_v which_o thing_n the_o church_n of_o god_n do_v altogether_o d●test_v against_o which_o synodall_n b●oke_v albinus_n write_v a_o epistle_n m●rveilouslie_o confirm_v by_o authority_n of_o divine_a scripture_n and_o carry_v the_o same_o to_o the_o french_a king_n together_o with_o the_o fore_n s●●d_a book_n in_o the_o name_n of_o our_o bishop_n and_o prince_n h●n●marus_n bishop_n of_o rheims_n live_v at_o the_o same_o time_n s●ith_o 〈…〉_z in_o the_o time_n of_o the_o emperor_n charles_n by_o the_o command_n of_o the_o see_v apostolic_a there_o be_v a_o general_a council_n call_v by_o the_o emperor_n wherein_o according_a to_o the_o pathway_n of_o scripture_n and_o tradition_n of_o ancestor_n the_o greek_n false_a synod_n be_v destroyed●_n and_o whole_o abrogated_a touch_v the_o repeal_n whereof_o the●e_n be_v a_o just_a volume_n send_v from_o the_o emperor_n to_o rome_n which_o myself_o have_v read_v in_o the_o palace_n when_o i_o be_v a_o young_a man_n say_v hin●marus_n ●he_v same_o also_o i●_n testify_v by_o sanct._n other_o namely_o ado_n rh●g●o_o and_o cassander_n a_o moderate_a pontifician_n and_o king_n charles_n speak_v of_o this_o synod_n say_v that_o 30._o be●●g_v destitute_a of_o scripture_n proole_n they_o betake_v themselves_o to_o apocryphal_a and_o ridiculous_a toy_n pa._n this_o book_n be_v 364._o forge_v under_o the_o name_n of_o carolus_n magnus_n pro._n indeed_o we_o be_v not_o at_o the_o make_v thereof_o yet_o thus_o much_o we_o can_v witness_v that_o your_o champion_n eckius_fw-la say_v 16._o charles_n write_v four_o book_n touch_v image_n and_o austin_n steuchus_n the_o pope_n library-keeper_n 226._o press_v some_o thing_n out_o of_o those_o caroline_n book_n make_v as_o he_o think_v for_o his_o master_n advantage_n cassander_n say_v sanctor_n that_o in_o his_o time_n there_o be_v a_o copy_n of_o those_o caroline_n book_n in_o the_o vatican_n library_n and_o in_o divers_a place_n of_o france_n and_o that_o hincmarus_n bishop_n of_o rheims_n mention_n those_o four_o caroline_n book_n beside_o they_o be_v late_o to_o be_v see_v in_o the_o palatine_n library_n at_o heidelberg_n but_o be_v now_o convey_v to_o rome_n where_o yet_o for_o all_o charlemaignes_n greatness_n th●y_v h●●e_v sue_v out_o a_o prohibition_n against_o he_o 〈…〉_z and_o his_o book●_n be_v forbid_v in_o the_o roman_a index_n first_o publish_v by_o pius_n the_o fourth_n command_n enlarge_v by_o sixtus_n quintus_n and_o review_v and_o publish_v by_o clement_n the_o eight_o howsoever_o you_o see_v and_o baronius_n confess_v that_o the_o most_o learned_a an●●amous_a of_o these_o time_n speak_v against_o this_o nicen_n decree_n pap_n the_o council_n of_o frankford_n and_o paris_n 〈…〉_z under_o lewis_n the_o first_o and_o other_o learned_a man_n mistake_v the_o definition_n of_o th●_n nicen_n council_n and_o therein_o erred●_n yet_o no●_n i●_n a_o m●tter_n of_o doctrine_n but_o a_o matter_n of_o fact_n say_v geneb●ard_n and_o bellarmine_n pro._n there_o be_v of_o their_o own_o side_n as_o learned_a as_o they_o whi●h_o mislike_v this_o excuse_n to_o wit_n 1610._o suarez_n and_o vasques_n so_o tha●_n it_o seem_v they_o be_v not_o agree_v of_o their_o verdict_n nor_o who_o shall_v speak_v for_o they_o pa._n bellarmine_n say_v that_o si._n the_o pope_n confirm_v the_o frankford_n council_n in_o one_o part_n and_o canceled_a it_o in_o another_o to_o wit_n in_o that_o point_n touch_v adoration_n of_o image_n whereunto_o the_o pope_n legate_n never_o consent_v pro._n this_o betray_v the_o pope_n partial_a d●aling_n to_o make_v the_o council_n only_o to_o serve_v his_o own_o turn_n but_o what_o if_o it_o wa●ted_v ●is_n approbation_n the_o thi●d_o canon_n of_o the_o chalced●n_n council_n that_o give_v the_o see_v of_o constantinople_n the_o precedence_n b●f●re_v other_o patriarch_n as_o the_o n●xt_n after_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n be_v oppose_v by_o pope_n leo_n legate_n and_o yet_o the_o canon_n be_v decree_v and_o pass_v and_o the_o council_n be_v hold_v for_o general_n howsoever_o the_o pipe_n legate_n 137._o contradict_v it_o for_o they_o be_v to_o be_v rule_v by_o the_o mayor_n part_n of_o the_o counsel_n vote_n neither_o do_v we_o find_v that_o ancient_o the_o pope_n have_v a_o negative_a or_o cast_a voice_n in_o counsel_n and_o therefore_o the_o chalcedon_n council_n notwithstanding_o the_o pope_n opposition_n profess_v 137._o haec_fw-la omnes_fw-la dicimus_fw-la this_o be_v all_o our_o vote_n ibid._n and_o tota_fw-la synodus_fw-la the_o whole_a council_n have_v confirm_v this_o canon_n for_o the_o honour_n of_o the_o see_v of_o constantinople_n 1●●●_n and_o according_o the_o whole_a council_n write_v to_o pope_n leo._n pa._n can_v the_o late_a council_n at_o frankford_n repeal_v the_o former_a at_o nice_a pro._n very_o well_o for_o as_o saint_n austin_n say_v 7._o even_o full_a and_o plenary_a counsel_n themselves_o may_v be_v amend_v by_o the_o late_a neither_o do_v he_o mean_v it_o in_o matter_n of_o fact_n but_o in_o point_n of_o doctrine_n for_o austin_n there_o speak_v of_o rebaptisation_n and_o ●m●ndari_fw-la be_v as_o much_o as_o è_fw-la mendis_fw-la purgari_fw-la to_o be_v rectify_v wherein_o it_o err_v and_o not_o only_o to_o be_v explain_v pa._n will_v charles_n who_o love_v pope_n adrian_n so_o dear_o num_fw-la write_v against_o he_o so_o sharp_o or_o the_o see_v of_o rome_n which_o by_o the_o hand_n of_o leo_n the_o three_o crown_v charles_n emperor_n of_o the_o west_n endure_v that_o charles_n shall_v condemn_v image_n pro._n charles_n may_v love_v the_o see_v of_o rome_n and_o yet_o express_v his_o judgement_n in_o the_o point_n of_o image_n neither_o do_v we_o doubt_v but_o that_o charles_n and_o pipin_n will_v have_v condemn_v the_o pope_n proceed_n therein_o more_o express_o but_o they_o can_v not_o meddle_v with_o the_o point_n of_o state_n without_o quarrel_v the_o pope_n in_o a_o matter_n of_o the_o church_n so_o that_o as_o saint_n austin_n say_v of_o the_o old_a roman_n 1●_n that_o they_o bear_v down_o many_o desire_n for_o the_o excessive_a desire_n they_o have_v of_o one_o thing_n to_o wit_n sovereignty_n and_o dominion_n so_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n desirous_a to_o keep_v their_o new_a purchase_n of_o lombardy_n and_o ravenna_n which_o charles_n and_o pipin_n have_v procure_v they_o think_v it_o not_o fit_a to_o contend_v with_o their_o new_a and_o potent_a favourite_n for_o so_o it_o be_v when_o the_o emperor_n leo_n the_o three_o desirous_a to_o abolish_v image_n worship_n which_o then_o be_v creep_v in_o have_v cause_v they_o to_o be_v deface_v and_o thereupon_o do_v punish_v some_o who_o withstand_v it_o 3._o gregory_n the_o second_o excommwicate_v he_o 3._o forbid_v the_o italian_n to_o pay_v he_o tribute_n or_o to_o obey_v he_o upon_o this_o sentence_n and_o exhibition_n of_o the_o pope_n a_o great_a part_n of_o italy_n 665._o rebel_v against_o their_o emperor_n
7_o make_v this_o inference_n 22._o in_o this_o do_v we_o give_v glory_n to_o he_o when_o we_o do_v confess_v that_o by_o no_o precedent_n merit_v of_o our_o good_a deed_n but_o by_o his_o mercy_n only_o we_o have_v attain_v unto_o so_o great_a a_o dignity_n and_o 2._o rabanus_n in_o his_o commentary_n upon_o the_o lamentation_n of_o jeremie_n lest_o they_o shall_v say_v our_o father_n be_v accept_v for_o their_o merit_n and_o therefore_o they_o obtain_v such_o great_a thing_n at_o the_o hand_n of_o the_o lord_n he_o adjoin_v that_o it_o be_v not_o give_v to_o their_o merit_n but_o because_o it_o so_o please_v god_n who_o free_a gift_n be_v whatsoever_o he_o bestow_v i_o will_v close_v up_o this_o age_n only_o with_o produce_v a_o evidence_n draw_v about_o the_o year_n 860_o namely_o a_o learned_a epistle_n which_o huldericke_n bishop_n of_o ausburg_n in_o germany_n write_v to_o pope_n nicolas_n in_o defence_n of_o priest_n marriage_n from_o this_o holy_a discretion_n 1569._o say_v he_o thou_o have_v no_o a_o little_a swarve_v when_o as_o thou_o will_v have_v those_o cleargy-man_n who_o thou_o ought_v only_o to_o advise_v to_o abstinence_n from_o marriage_n compel_v unto_o it_o by_o a_o certain_a imperious_a violence_n for_o be_v not_o this_o just_o in_o the_o judgement_n of_o all_o wise_a man_n to_o be_v account_v violence_n when_o as_o against_o the_o evangelicall_n institution_n and_o the_o charge_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n any_o man_n be_v constrain_v to_o the_o execution_n of_o private_a decree_n the_o lord_n in_o the_o old_a law_n appoint_v marriage_n to_o his_o priest_n which_o he_o be_v never_o read_v afterward_o to_o have_v forbid_v pa._n master_n brere_o say_v 7._o that_o this_o epistle_n be_v forge_v under_o the_o name_n of_o ulrick_n bishop_n of_o augusta_n pro._n your_o spanish_a inquisitor_n have_v h._n suppress_v this_o testimony_n and_o strike_v it_o dead_a with_o a_o o._n deleatur_fw-la let_v that_o whole_a epistle_n be_v blot_v out_o but_o our_o learned_a bishop_n doctor_n hall_n 5._o prove_v that_o this_o huldericke_n write_v such_o a_o treatise_n and_o about_o the_o time_n assign_v and_o also_o that_o this_o record_n be_v authentic_a that_o it_o be_v extant_a as_o illyricus_n say_v in_o the_o library_n of_o germany_n that_o ou●_n archbishop_n parker_n bishop_n jewel_n john_n fox_n have_v copy_n of_o it_o in_o parchment_n of_o great_a antiquity_n beside_o your_o own_o man_n aeneas_n silvius_n afterward_o pope_n pius_n the_o second_o almost_o two_o hundred_o year_n ago_o mention_n it_o and_o report_v the_o argument_n of_o it_o for_o speak_v of_o ausburg_n he_o say_v german●ae_fw-la saint_n vdalricus_n huic_fw-la praesidet_fw-la qui_fw-la papam_fw-la arguit_fw-la de_fw-la concubinis_fw-la vdalricke_n be_v the_o saint_n of_o that_o city_n who_o reprove_v the_o pope_n concern_v concubine_n the_o ten_o centurie_n from_o the_o year_n of_o grace_n 900._o to_o 1000_o papist_n we_o be_v now_o draw_v on_o to_o the_o thousand_o year_n what_o say_v you_o to_o this_o ten_o age_n protestant_n by_o the_o fall_n of_o the_o roman_a empire_n learning_n be_v now_o decay_v and_o the_o public_a service_n no_o long_o to_o be_v understand_v by_o reason_n of_o the_o change_n of_o the_o vulgar_a tongue_n wernerus_n a_o carthusian_n monk_n 6●_n say_v of_o this_o age_n that_o holiness_n have_v leave_v the_o pope_n and_o flee_v to_o the_o emperor_n bellarmine_n say_v chronolog_n there_o be_v no_o age_n so_o unlearned_a so_o unlucky_a and_o baronius_n complain_v say_v 8._o what_o be_v then_o the_o face_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n when_o potent_a and_o base_a whore_n bear_v all_o the_o sway_n at_o rome_n at_o who_o lust_n see_v be_v change_v bishopricke_n bestow_v and_o their_o lover_n thrust_v into_o saint_n peter_n chair_n insomuch_o as_o baronius_n be_v glad_a to_o prepare_v his_o reader_n with_o a_o 1._o preface_n before_o he_o will_v have_v he_o venture_v upon_o the_o annal_n of_o this_o age_n lest_o a_o weak_a man_n see_v in_o the_o story_n of_o those_o time_n the_o abomination_n of_o desolation_n sit_v in_o the_o temple_n shall_v be_v offend_v and_o not_o rather_o wonder_v that_o there_o follow_v not_o immediate_o the_o desolation_n of_o the_o temple_n and_o he_o have_v reason_n to_o preface_n as_o much_o consider_v the_o corruption_n that_o grow_v in_o this_o thousand_o year_n wherein_o 20.3_o satan_n be_v let_v loose_a for_o at_o thi●_n time_n they_o of_o rome_n forbid_v other_o to_o mar●y_n and_o in_o the_o mean_a while_o themselves_o sleep_v in_o a_o unlawful_a bed_n they_o also_o devise_v a_o carnal_a presence_n of_o christ_n in_o the_o sacrament_n so_o that_o as_o the_o noble_a morney_n ●08_n say_v the_o less_o that_o they_o believe_v god_n in_o heaven_n the_o more_o careful_a be_v they_o to_o affirm_v he_o to_o be_v in_o the_o bread_n in_o the_o priest_n hand_n in_o his_o word_n in_o his_o nod_n and_o that_o by_o these_o mean_n when_o it_o please_v they_o they_o can_v make_v he_o appear_v upon_o earth_n thus_o dishonesty_n accompany_v infidelity_n and_o no_o marvel_n since_o as_o ockam_n 26._o say_v a_o lewd_a life_n oftentimes_o blind●th_v the_o understanding_n but_o le●_n we_o see_v whether_o in_o this_o monkish_a age_n during_o this_o mist_n in_o egypt_n we_o can_v discover_v any_o light_n in_o the_o land_n of_o goshen_n in_o this_o age_n live_v the_o monk_n radulphus_fw-la flaviace●sis_fw-la stephanus_n edvensis_n bishop_n smaragdus_n eccles_n abbot_n of_o saint_n michael_n in_o germany_n and_o aelfricke_a abbot_n of_o malmesburie_n about_o the_o year_n 975._o of_o the_o scripture_n sufficiency_n and_o canon_n flaviacensis_fw-la compare_v the_o scripture_n to_o a_o well-furnished_a table_n or_o ordinary_a it_o be_v say_v he_o 5._o our_o spiritual_a refection_n and_o cordial_n give_v to_o we_o against_o the_o heart-qualme_n of_o our_o enemy_n the_o same_o author_n speak_v of_o book_n pertain_v to_o sacred_a history_n 203._o say_v the_o book_n of_o tobit_n judith_n and_o of_o the_o maccabee_n though_o they_o be_v read_v ●or_a the_o church_n instruction_n yet_o they_o have_v not_o any_o perfect_a authority_n in_o like_a sort_n aelfricke_n abbot_n of_o malmesburie_n in_o his_o saxon_a treaty_n of_o the_o old_a testament_n tell_v we_o 23._o there_o be_v two_o book_n more_o place_v with_o salomon_n work_v as_o if_o he_o have_v make_v they_o which_o for_o likeness_n of_o style_n and_o profitable_a use_n have_v go_v for_o his_o but_o jesus_n the_o son_n of_o syrach_n compose_v they_o one_o be_v call_v libre_fw-la sapientiae_fw-la the_o book_n of_o wisdom_n and_o the_o other_o ecclesiasticus_fw-la very_o large_a book_n and_o read_v in_o the_o church_n of_o long_a custom_n for_o much_o good_a instruction_n among_o these_o book_n the_o church_n have_v accustom_v to_o place_v two_o other_o tend_v to_o the_o glory_n of_o god_n and_o entitle_v maccabaeorum_n i_o have_v turn_v they_o into_o english_a and_o so_o read_v they_o you_o may_v if_o you_o please_v for_o your_o own_o instruction_n now_o by_o this_o saxon_a treatise_n write_v by_o aelfricus_fw-la abbas_n about_o the_o time_n of_o king_n edgar_n seven_o hundred_o year_n ago_o it_o appear_v what_o be_v the_o canon_n of_o holy_a scripture_n here_o then_o receive_v and_o that_o the_o church_n of_o england_n have_v it_o so_o long_o ago_o in_o her_o mother_n tongue_n of_o communion_n under_o both_o and_o number_n of_o sacrament_n stephanus_n edvensis_n say_v 587_o these_o gift_n or_o benefit_n ●re_n daily_o perform_v unto_o we_o when_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n be_v take_v at_o the_o altar_n aelfricke_a mention_n but_o two_o sacrament_n of_o baptism_n a●d_v the_o lord_n supper_n the_o same_o which_o god_n people_n have_v under_o the_o law_n who_o though_o they_o have_v many_o rite_n and_o ceremony_n yet_o in_o proper_a sense_n but_o two_o sacrament_n his_o word_n be_v these_o load_n the_o apostle_n paul_n say_v 1_o cor._n chap._n 10._o vers_fw-la 1_o 2_o 3_o 4._o that_o the_o israelite_n do_v eat_v the_o same_o ghostly_a meat_n and_o drink_v the_o same_o ghostly_a drink_n because_o that_o heavenly_a meat_n that_o feed_v they_o forty_o year_n and_o that_o water_n which_o from_o the_o stone_n do_v flow_v have_v signification_n of_o christ_n body_n and_o his_o blood_n that_o now_o be_v offer_v daily_o in_o god_n church_n so_o that_o as_o a_o good_a author_n say_v 3._o this_o age_n acknowledge_v only_o two_o sacrament_n of_o the_o eucharist_n our_o english_a abbot_n aelfricke_n in_o his_o saxon_a homily_n which_o be_v appoint_v public_o to_o be_v read_v to_o the_o people_n in_o england_n on_o easter_n day_n before_o they_o receive_v the_o communion_n have_v these_o word_n 23._o all_o our_o forefather_n they_n do_v eat_v the_o same_o ghostly_a meat_n and_o drink_v the_o same_o ghostly_a drink_n they_o drink_v true_o of_o the_o stone_n that_o follow_v they_o and_o that_o stone_n be_v christ_n neither_o be_v
examine_v they_o the_o like_a may_v be_v say_v of_o bede_n gregory_n and_o other_o that_o hold_v christ_n the_o foundation_n a_o right_a and_o groan_v under_o the_o weight_n of_o man_n tradition_n humane_a satisfaction_n and_o the_o like_a popish_a trash_n they_o by_o unfeigned_a repentance_n for_o their_o error_n &_o lapse_n know_v and_o unknown_a and_o by_o a_o assure_a faith_n in_o their_o saviour_n do_v find_v favour_n with_o the_o lord_n these_o and_o the_o like_a we_o hold_v to_o be_v god_n servant_n and_o propter_fw-la meliorem_fw-la &_o saniorem_fw-la partem_fw-la by_o reason_n of_o their_o better_a and_o sound_a part_n to_o be_v with_o we_o lively_a member_n of_o the_o true_a church_n though_o in_o some_o thing_n they_o be_v mistake_v and_o that_o they_o may_v be_v term_v professor_n of_o our_o faith_n inasmuch_o as_o the_o denomination_n be_v to_o be_v take_v from_o the_o better_a part_n and_o not_o always_o from_o the_o great_a for_o example_n sake_n there_o be_v much_o water_n and_o little_a wine_n mix_v in_o a_o glass_n yet_o it_o be_v call_v a_o glass_n of_o wine_n so_o say_v we_o of_o professor_n s._n bernard_n and_o such_o like_a there_o be_v in_o they_o some_o bad_a part_n some_o superstition_n and_o popery_n and_o some_o good_a in_o that_o they_o hold_v christ_n jesus_n the_o foundation_n aright_o in_o this_o case_n they_o may_v in_o respect_n of_o their_o better_a part_n be_v term_v and_o denominate_v true_a professor_n and_o therefore_o you_o must_v give_v we_o again_o saint_n bernard_n with_o other_o to_o who_o you_o have_v no_o right_a or_o claim_v unless_o it_o be_v to_o their_o error_n which_o they_o suck_v in_o from_o the_o corrupt_a breast_n of_o some_o of_o your_o side_n and_o so_o i_o proceed_v to_o the_o several_a point_n in_o question_n of_o the_o scripture_n sufficiency_n and_o canon_n saint_n bernard_n as_o we_o hear_v approve_v 91_o such_o a_o council_n wherein_o the_o tradition_n of_o man_n be_v not_o obstinate_o defend_v but_o the_o reveal_v will_n of_o god_n inquire_v after_o for_o that_o 86._o this_o be_v all_o in_o all_o claudius_n seyssel_n archbishop_n of_o turin_n in_o piedmont_n one_o that_o be_v neighbour_n to_o the_o waldenses_n and_o labour_v to_o inform_v himself_o touch_n their_o position_n and_o also_o to_o confute_v they_o say_v 4._o that_o they_o admit_v only_o the_o text_n of_o the_o old_a and_o new_a testament_n so_o that_o they_o deny_v unwritten_a tradition_n to_o be_v the_o rule_n of_o faith_n petrus_n cluniacensis_fw-la after_o he_o have_v reckon_v up_o the_o canonical_a book_n say_v brusian_a there_o be_v beside_o the_o authentical_a book_n six_o other_o not_o to_o be_v reject_v as_o namely_o judith_n tobias_n wisdom_n ecclesiasticus_fw-la and_o the_o two_o book_n of_o macchabee_n which_o though_o they_o attain_v not_o to_o the_o high_a dignity_n of_o the_o former_a yet_o they_o be_v receive_v of_o the_o church_n as_o contain_v necessary_a and_o profitable_a doctrine_n hugo_n de_fw-fr sancto_fw-la victore_fw-la say_v 7._o all_o the_o canonical_a book_n of_o the_o old_a testament_n be_v twenty_o two_o there_o be_v other_o book_n also_o as_o namely_o the_o wisdom_n of_o solomon_n the_o book_n of_o jesus_n the_o son_n of_o syrach_n the_o book_n of_o judith_n tobias_n and_o the_o maccabee_n which_o be_v read_v but_o not_o write_v in_o the_o canon_n the_o bible_n be_v translate_v into_o english_a some_o hundred_o year_n as_o it_o be_v probable_o conjecture_v before_o wickliffs_n translation_n come_v forth_o a_o copy_n of_o which_o ancient_a translation_n myself_o have_v see_v in_o our_o queen_n college_n library_n in_o oxford_n in_o the_o praeface_n whereof_o it_o may_v be_v see_v that_o the_o translator_n hold_v the_o controvert_v book_n for_o apocrypha_fw-la for_o thus_o he_o say_v what_o ever_o book_n of_o the_o old_a testament_n be_v out_o of_o these_o he_o make_v the_o same_o ●anon_n with_o we_o twenty_o five_o before_o say_v shall_v be_v set_v among_o apocrypha_fw-la that_o be_v without_o authority_n of_o belief_n therefore_o the_o book_n of_o wisdom_n ecclesiasticus_fw-la judith_n and_o toby_n be_v not_o of_o belief_n hierome_n say_v all_o this_o sentence_n in_o the_o prologue_n on_o the_o first_o book_n of_o king_n now_o if_o at_o that_o time_n the_o above_o say_v book_n have_v be_v account_v authentical_a by_o the_o church_n and_o of_o belief_n he_o will_v have_v say_v but_o this_o opinion_n of_o hieromes_n be_v not_o approve_v by_o the_o church_n as_o doctor_n james_n have_v well_o observe_v 74._o of_o communion_n under_o both_o kind_n and_o number_n of_o sacrament_n hvgo_fw-la de_fw-la sancto_fw-it victore_fw-la give_v a_o reason_n of_o the_o entire_a communicate_v in_o both_o kind_n therefore_o say_v he_o 6._o the_o sacrament_n be_v take_v in_o both_o kind_n that_o thereby_o a_o double_a effect_n may_v be_v signify_v for_o it_o have_v force_v as_o s._n ambrose_n say_v to_o preserve_v both_o body_n and_o soul_n gratian_n rehearse_v 2._o many_o ancient_a canon_n and_o constitution_n for_o communicate_v in_o both_o kind_n saint_n bernard_n in_o his_o three_o sermon_n on_o palm_n sunday_n make_v the_o sacrament_n of_o christ_n body_n and_o blood_n the_o christian_n food_n touch_v the_o sacrament_n of_o christ_n body_n and_o blood_n say_v he_o palmarum_fw-la there_o be_v no_o man_n who_o know_v not_o that_o this_o so_o singular_a a_o food_n be_v on_o that_o day_n first_o exhibit_v on_o that_o day_n commend_v and_o command_v to_o be_v frequent_o receive_v saint_n bernard_n word_n have_v reference_n to_o the_o institution_n of_o christ_n now_o at_o our_o saviour_n last_o supper_n there_o be_v wine_n as_o well_o as_o bread_n and_o bernard_n treat_v thereof_o say_v it_o be_v command_v to_o be_v frequent_o receive_v now_o if_o the_o whole_a church_n be_v enjoin_v so_o to_o do_v than_o also_o be_v every_o particular_a believer_n who_o be_v of_o age_n &_o fit_v thereunto_o enjoin_v to_o receive_v it_o according_o the_o precise_a number_n of_o seven_o sacrament_n be_v not_o hold_v for_o catholic_a doctrine_n no_o not_o in_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n until_o more_o than_o a_o thousand_o year_n after_o christ_n this_o be_v ingenuous_o confess_v by_o cassander_n until_o the_o day_n of_o peter_n lombard_n who_o live_v about_o the_o year_n 1145_o you_o shall_v scarce_o find_v any_o author_n say_v their_o cassander_n 13._o who_o set_v down_o any_o certain_a and_o definite_a number_n of_o sacrament_n neither_o do_v all_o the_o schoolman_n call_v all_o those_o s●ven_n proper_a sacrament_n but_o this_o be_v without_o all_o controversy_n say_v the_o same_o cassander_n ibid._n that_o there_o be_v two_o chief_a sacrament_n of_o our_o salvation_n that_o be_v to_o say_v baptism_n and_o the_o lord_n supper_n and_o so_o speak_v rupertus_n and_o hugo_n de_fw-fr sancto_fw-la victore_fw-la and_o he_o say_v true_a for_o rupertus_n 1525._o put_v the_o question_n and_o ask_v which_o be_v the_o chief_a sacrament_n of_o our_o salvation_n and_o he_o answer_v baptism_n and_o the_o supper_n of_o the_o lord_n of_o the_o eucharist_n in_o this_o age_n ●ratian_n the_o monk_n afford_v we_o a_o notable_a testimony_n against_o transubstantiation_n his_o comparison_n be_v thus_o draw_v this_o holy_a bread_n be_v after_o its_o manner_n call_v the_o body_n of_o christ_n as_o the_o offering_n thereof_o by_o the_o hand_n of_o the_o priest_n be_v call_v christ_n passion_n now_o the_o priest_n oblation_n be_v not_o proper_o and_o literal_o in_o strict_a term_n and_o sense_n the_o passion_n of_o christ_n but_o as_o the_o gloss_n have_v it_o the_o sacrament_n represent_v the_o body_n of_o christ_n be_v therefore_o call_v christ_n flesh_n not_o in_o verity_n of_o the_o thing_n but_o in_o a_o mystery_n namely_o as_o the_o representation_n of_o christ_n therein_o be_v call_v his_o passion_n gratian'ss_n word_n be_v these_o 2._o as_o the_o heavenly_a bread_n which_o be_v christ_n flesh_n after_o a_o sort_n be_v call_v christ_n body_n whereas_o indeed_o it_o be_v the_o sacrament_n of_o his_o body_n and_o the_o sacrifice_a of_o the_o flesh_n of_o christ_n which_o be_v do_v by_o the_o priest_n hand_n be_v say_v to_o be_v his_o passion_n not_o in_o the_o truth_n of_o the_o thing_n but_o in_o a_o signify_v mystery_n i●annes_n semeca_n who_o be_v the_o first_o that_o gloss_v upon_o gratian'ss_n decree_n tell_v we_o how_o this_o comparison_n be_v to_o be_v mean_v this_o sacrament_n say_v the_o gloss_n c●●lestis_fw-la because_o it_o do_v represent_v the_o flesh_n of_o christ_n be_v call_v the_o body_n of_o christ_n but_o improper_o not_o in_o the_o truth_n of_o the_o thing_n but_o in_o the_o mystical_a sense_n to_o wit_n it_o be_v call_v the_o body_n of_o ●hrist_n that_o be_v it_o signify_v his_o body_n from_o these_o premise_n we_o infer_v that_o after_o consecration_n the_o sacrament_n be_v not_o in_o truth_n christ_n body_n but_o only_o in_o a_o
that_o which_o make_v strong_o against_o the_o papacy_n for_o now_o a_o dai●s_n this_o style_n of_o universal_a bishop_n which_o gregory_n hold_v to_o b●e_v the_o harbinger_n of_o antichrist_n be_v bring_v in_o as_o a_o main_a proof_n of_o the_o pope_n supremacy_n 31._o neither_o can_v gregory_n restrain_v his_o successor_n from_o bear_v this_o title_n for_o boniface_n the_o three_o who_o next_o save_o one_o succeed_v gregory_n 3._o obtain_v of_o phocas_n the_o emperor_n not_o without_o great_a contention_n that_o the_o see_v of_o rome_n shall_v be_v call●d_v the_o head_n of_o all_o church_n be_v the_o same_o place_n of_o pre-eminence_n in_o ●ffect_n which_o john_n in_o gregory_n time_n so_o much_o affect_v now_o by_o this_o the_o reader_n may_v perceive_v and_o that_o from_o the_o tongue_n and_o pen_n of_o one_o of_o their_o best_a pope_n that_o be_v since_o his_o time_n that_o in_o gregory_n judgement_n his_o successor_n that_o enjoy_v this_o swell_a title_n and_o transcendent_a power_n be_v prove_v to_o be_v antichristian_a bishop_n last_o the_o reader_n may_v observe_v who_o it_o be_v that_o give_v the_o pope_n this_o jurisdiction_n it_o be_v even_o that_o usurper_n phocas_n sixpence_n who_o murder_v his_o master_n maurice_n the_o emperor_n and_o then_o confer_v this_o profane_a title_n on_o pope_n boniface_n a_o fit_a chaplain_n for_o such_o a_o pa●ron_n hitherto_o we_o have_v treat_v of_o saint_n gregory_n faith_n and_o visit_v the_o college_n of_o bangor_n the_o foundation_n whereof_o be_v ascribe_v to_o king_n lucius_n from_o who_o time_n unto_o the_o entrance_n of_o austin_n the_o monk_n 438._o year_n be_v expire_v in_o all_o which_o space_n the_o christian_a faith_n be_v both_o teach_v and_o embrace_v in_o this_o island_n notwithstanding_o the_o continual_a persecution_n of_o the_o roman_n huns_n pict_n and_o s●xons_n which_o last_o make_v such_o desolation_n in_o th●_n outward_a face_n of_o the_o church_n that_o they_o drive_v the_o chri●●●●n_a bishop_n into_o the_o desert_n of_o cornwall_n and_o 20._o wa●es_n in_o which_o number_n be_v the_o bishop_n of_o london_n and_o york_n now_o by_o their_o labour_n the_o gospel_n be_v replant_v among_o the_o inhabitant_n of_o those_o vast_a moun●taines_n and_o far_o spread_v itself_o into_o these_o northern_a part_n what_o time_n as_o edwin_n and_o oswald_n king_n of_o northumbe●land_n send_v for_o saint_n aidan_n and_o finan_n into_o scotland_n to_o convert_v their_o subject_n to_o the_o 3._o faith_n pa._n what_o be_v this_o aidan_n and_o finan_n pro._n they_o be_v the_o worthy_a instrument_n which_o the_o lord_n raise_v up_o for_o the_o good_a of_o our_o country_n for_o by_o the_o ministry_n of_o 6._o aidan_n be_v the_o kingdom_n of_o northumberland_n recover_v from_o paganism_n whereunto_o belong_v then_o beside_o the_o shire_n of_o northumberland_n and_o the_o land_n beyond_o it_o unto_o edenborrough_n frith_n cumberland_n also_o and_o westmoreland_n lancashire_n yorkshire_n and_o the_o bishopric_n of_o durham_n and_o by_o the_o mean_n of_o 24_o finan_n not_o only_o the_o kingdom_n of_o the_o east-saxons_a which_o contain_v essex_n middlesex_n and_o half_a of_o hertfordshire_n regain_v but_o also_o the_o large_a kingdom_n of_o mercia_n with_o the_o shire_n comprehend_v under_o it_o be_v first_o convert_v unto_o christianity_n so_o that_o these_o two_o for_o their_o extraordinary_a holiness_n 26._o and_o painfulness_n in_o preach_v the_o gospel_n be_v excee_o reverence_v by_o all_o that_o know_v they_o aidan_n especial_o ●5_n who_o although_o he_o can_v not_o keep_v easter_n say_v bede_n contrary_a to_o the_o manner_n of_o they_o which_o send_v he_o yet_o he_o be_v careful_a diligent_o to_o perform_v the_o work_n of_o faith_n godliness_n and_o love_n after_o the_o manner_n use_v by_o all_o holy_a man_n whereupon_o he_o be_v worthy_o belove_v of_o all_o even_o of_o they_o also_o who_o think_v otherwise_o of_o easter_n than_o he_o do_v and_o be_v reverence_v not_o only_o of_o the_o mean_a rank_n but_o of_o the_o bishop_n themselves_o honorius_n of_o canterbury_n and_o felix_n of_o the_o east-angle_n in_o this_o age_n also_o be_v hold_v the_o six_o general_a council_n at_o constantinople_n summon_v by_o the_o emperor_n council_n commandment_n it_o be_v call_v against_o the_o heresy_n of_o the_o monothelite_n and_o therein_o honorius_n the_o pope_n be_v 16._o accurse_v for_o a_o monothelite_n it_o be_v the●e_n also_o 〈◊〉_d decree_v that_o the_o see_v of_o constantinople_n shall_v enjoy_v equal_a privilege_n with_o the_o see_v of_o rome_n and_o whereas_o some_o canon_n be_v allege_v for_o restraint_n of_o priest_n marriage_n they_o be_v oppose_v by_o this_o council_n and_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v in_o express_a term_n 374_o tax_v for_o urge_v they_o and_o upon_o pain_n of_o deposition_n to_o the_o gainsayer_n it_o be_v decree_v 374._o that_o the_o marriage_n of_o ecclesiastical_a person_n be_v a_o thing_n lawful_a and_o that_o their_o conjugal_a cohabitation_n stand_v with_o the_o apostolic_a canon_n be_v a_o ancient_a tradition_n and_o orderly_a constitution_n and_o in_o case_n continency_n be_v enjoin_v it_o be_v not_o perpetual_a but_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d in_o the_o proper_a turn_n or_o course_n of_o their_o ministry_n so_o that_o the_o restraint_n of_o priest_n from_o marry_v neither_o be_v nor_o ever_o be_v conceive_v to_o be_v 10._o say_v learned_a bishop_n andrews_n but_o positivi_n juris_fw-la which_o be_v restrain_v upon_o good_a reason_n it_o may_v upon_o as_o good_a reason_n be_v release_v and_o pope_n pius_n the_o second_o be_v of_o opinion_n vit●_n that_o there_o be_v better_a reason_n to_o release_v they_o then_o to_o restrain_v they_o and_o so_o be_v divers_a other_o at_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n if_o there_o have_v be_v fair_a play_n and_o yet_o jesuit_n 9_o coster_n hold_v that_o a_o priest_n offend_v great_o if_o he_o commit_v fornication_n gravius_n tamen_fw-la peccat_fw-la but_o he_o offend_v more_o grievous_o if_o he_o marry_v pa._n this_o council_n be_v neither_o the_o six_o nor_o general_a pro._n caranza_n and_o balsamon_n call_v it_o both_o six_o and_o general_a quini-sextum_a we_o grant_v indeed_o that_o to_o speak_v precise_o the_o six_o synod_n under_o constantine_n the_o four_o publish_v no_o canon_n but_o afterward_o divers_a of_o the_o same_o father_n which_o have_v former_o meet_v in_o the_o six_o synod_n they_o and_o other_o to_o the_o number_n of_o 227_o be_v call_v together_o by_o the_o then_o penitent_a and_o restore_v emperor_n jus●inian_n gather_v up_o and_o set_v for●h_v the_o canon_n former_o make_v and_o by_o they_o reenforced_v and_o balsamon_n 1561._o say_v that_o basilius_n bishop_n of_o gortyna_n the_o metropolis_n of_o crete_n which_o be_v then_o under_o the_o archbishop_n of_o rome_n and_o the_o bishop_n of_o ravenna_n be_v there_o to_o represent_v the_o roma●e_a church_n the_o truth_n be_v your_o romanist_n can_v endure_v t●is_o g●eeke_a council_n because_o it_o set_v the_o patriarch_n of_o constantinople_n cheek_n by_o jowl_n with_o the_o roman_a bishop_n in_o a_o word_n if_o some_o canon_n of_o this_o council_n be_v just_o except_v against_o this_o mak●s_v not_o against_o we_o for_o we_o warrant_v not_o all_o that_o go_v u●d●r_a tha●_n counsel_n name_n nor_o they_o that_o once_o speak_v truth_n from_o ever_o err_a and_o it_o seem_v gratian_n he_o monk_n have_v be_v a_o tamper_n with_o the_o canon_n allege_v for_o in_o one_o of_o gratian'ss_n edition_n we_o read_v thus_o 1507._o let_v not_o constantinople_n be_v magnify_v as_o much_o as_o rome_n in_o matter_n ecclesiastical_a and_o in_o another_o ibid._n let_v constantinople_n be_v advance_v as_o well_o as_o rome_n and_o now_o have_v we_o survey_v the_o first_o six_o general_a counsel_n and_o find_v they_o to_o have_v be_v 2._o call_v by_o the_o emperor_n and_o not_o by_o the_o pope_n and_o yet_o 12._o bellarmine_n now_o a_o day_n deny_v this_o power_n to_o godly_a prince_n and_o will_v confer_v it_o on_o the_o pope_n the_o eight_o centurie_n from_o the_o year_n of_o grace_n 700._o to_o 800._o papist_n what_o say_v you_o to_o this_o eight_o age_n protestant_n this_o age_n be_v behold_v to_o our_o nation_n which_o eccles_n afford_v such_o worthy_n as_o venerable_a bede_n the_o honour_n of_o england_n and_o mirror_n of_o his_o time_n for_o learning_n as_o also_o his_o eccles_n scholar_n alcuinus_fw-la count_v one_o of_o the_o founder_n of_o the_o university_n of_o paris_n and_o schoolmaster_n to_o charles_n the_o great_a by_o who_o or_o his_o procurement_n be_v write_v tho●e_o libri_fw-la carolini_n king_n charles_n his_o book_n oppose_v the_o second_o nicen_n synod_n which_o stand_v for_o image_n worship_n now_o also_o live_v antony_n the_o monk_n and_o damascen_n one_o that_o lay_v the_o foundation_n of_o schoole-divinitie_n among_o the_o greek_n as_o peter_n lombard_n afterward_o do_v among_o the_o latin_n he_o be_v indeed_o a_o patron_n of_o
top_n of_o wisdom_n and_o learning_n neither_o do_v some_o young_a student_n only_o follow_v he_o but_o even_o the_o chief_a of_o the_o university_n master_n robert_n rig_v vicechancellor_a and_o the_o two_o proctor_n take_v part_n with_o he_o as_o also_o nicholas_n herford_n john_n ashton_n of_o m●rton-colledge_n john_n ashwarby_n of_o oriel-colledge_n pastor_n of_o st._n mary_n church_n these_o be_v preacher_n and_o bachelor_n of_o divinity_n join_v with_o he_o and_o be_v question_v on_o that_o behalf_n thomas_n walsingham_n special_o note_n 286._o that_o when_o the_o archbishop_n of_o canterbury_n have_v send_v wickliff_n condemnation_n to_o robert_n rig_v chancellor_n of_o the_o university_n of_o oxford_n to_o be_v divulge_v he_o appoint_v they_o to_o preach_v that_o day_n who_o he_o know_v to_o be_v most_o zealous_a follower_n of_o wickliff_n and_o among_o other_o he_o ordain_v one_o philip_n repington_n a_o cannon_n of_o leycester_n to_o preach_v on_o corpus_fw-la christi_fw-la day_n who_o conclude_v his_o sermon_n with_o these_o word_n for_o speculative_a doctrine_n say_v he_o such_o as_o the_o point_n of_o the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o altar_n be_v i_o will_v set_v a_o bar_n on_o my_o lip_n while_o god_n have_v otherwise_o instruct_v or_o illuminate_v the_o heart_n of_o the_o clergy_n and_o afterward_o when_o bull_n come_v thick_a from_o rome_n from_o the_o two_o gregory_n the_o eleven_o and_o twelve_o against_o wickliff_n and_o his_o doctrine_n the_o whole_a university_n give_v a_o testimony_n in_o favour_n of_o he_o under_o their_o seal_n in_o their_o congregation_n house_n in_o these_o word_n among_o other_o 5._o god_n forbid_v that_o our_o prelate_n shall_v have_v condemn_v a_o man_n of_o su●h_a honesty_n for_o a_o heretic_n but_o there_o be_v nothing_o that_o may_v more_o ample_o testify_v the_o spread_a of_o his_o doctrine_n than_o a_o act_n of_o parliament_n in_o the_o day_n of_o king_n richard_n the_o second_o where_o it_o be_v relate_v 5._o that_o there_o be_v divers_a preach_v daily_o not_o only_o in_o church_n and_o churchyard_n but_o also_o in_o market_n fair_n and_o other_o open_a place_n where_o a_o great_a congregation_n of_o people_n be_v divers_a sermon_n contain_v heresy_n and_o notorious_a error_n for_o so_o they_o please_v to_o style_v it_o in_o those_o day_n pap_n be_v wickliff_n doctrine_n follow_v after_o his_o death_n prot._n that_o which_o wickliff_n teach_v be_v neither_o bear_v with_o he_o nor_o die_v with_o he_o indeed_o if_o either_o the_o strength_n or_o policy_n of_o man_n can_v have_v make_v it_o away_o it_o have_v not_o continue_v as_o it_o do_v to_o this_o day_n for_o in_o the_o year_n 1378._o pope_n gregory_n the_o eleven_o direct_v his_o bull_n to_o the_o university_n of_o oxford_n against_o the_o doctrine_n and_o article_n of_o that_o learned_a man_n even_o rome_n itself_o ring_v of_o his_o opinion_n in_o that_o university_n and_o walsingam_n say_v 200._o that_o the_o pope_n tax_v the_o head_n of_o the_o university_n for_o the_o sleight_n care_v they_o take_v in_o the_o suppress_n of_o wickliff_n doctrine_n and_o the_o same_o walsingham_n complain_v that_o those_o of_o the_o university_n be_v long_a time_n in_o suspense_n whether_o they_o shall_v receive_v the_o pope_n bull_n with_o honour_n or_o reject_v it_o with_o reproach_n afterward_o gregory_n the_o twelve_o direct_v another_o bull_n to_o oxford_n against_o wickliff_n thomas_n arundel_n archbishop_n of_o canterbury_n hold_v a_o council_n at_o oxford_n and_o procure_v a_o visitation_n and_o sharp_a inquisition_n against_o the_o head_n of_o college_n hall_n and_o other_o suspect_v of_o wicklevisme_n or_o lollardy_n and_o this_o constitution_n be_v to_o be_v see_v in_o linwood_n f●●aliter_fw-la now_o this_o be_v but_o a_o provincial_n constitution_n in_o come_v the_o council_n of_o constance_n and_o condemn_v wickliff_n cause_v his_o bone_n to_o be_v take_v up_o wickliff_n and_o burn_v forty_o year_n neu●●r_n after_o his_o death_n and_o burial_n and_o this_o mandate_n of_o the_o pope_n be_v execute_v by_o richard_n fleming_n bishop_n of_o lincoln_n as_o linwood_n testify_v who_o live_v at_o the_o time_n when_o this_o be_v do_v to_o wit_n in_o the_o year_n 1428._o and_o thus_o be_v the_o canonical_a censure_n pass_v upon_o wickliff_n and_o his_o adherent_n now_o the_o secular_a power_n join_v with_o they_o for_o in_o the_o day_n of_o king_n henry_n the_o four_o and_o five_o there_o be_v make_v the_o statute_n de_fw-fr haeretico_fw-la comburendo_fw-la 15●_n whereby_o the_o wicklevist_n and_o lollard_n be_v adjudge_v to_o be_v burn_v after_o this_o king_n edward_n the_o four_o send_v mandatory_a letter_n to_o the_o governor_n in_o oxford_n to_o make_v search_n for_o wickliff_n book_n and_o to_o burn_v they_o and_o according_o the_o master_n and_o doctor_n do_v here_o be_v now_o both_o his_o bone_n and_o his_o book_n burn_v they_o think_v belike_o to_o make_v sure_a work_n and_o never_o to_o hear_v more_o of_o the_o man_n again_o but_o so_o it_o be_v that_o out_o of_o his_o ash_n as_o it_o be_v there_o arise_v another_o phoenix_n and_o generation_n of_o wicklevist_n which_o renew_v his_o memory_n &_o doctrine_n belike_o then_o there_o be_v many_o that_o follow_v his_o doctrine_n or_o else_o why_o make_v they_o so_o much_o ado_n what_o need_v so_o many_o statute_n letter_n and_o proclamation_n so_o many_o bull_n counsel_n and_o constitution_n indeed_o there_o be_v many_o in_o oxford_n and_o elsewhere_o and_o they_o of_o good_a note_n who_o embrace_v wickliff_n opinion_n after_o his_o decease_n as_o namely_o etc._n laurence_n redman_n master_n of_o art_n david_n sawtree_n a_o divine_a william_n jones_n thomas_n brightwell_n william_n haulam_fw-la a_o civilian_n ralph_n greenhurst_n fellow_n of_o new-colledge_n as_o also_o one_o walter_n bruit_n a_o layman_n mention_v by_o one_o william_n wideford_n a_o great_a papist_n this_o wideford_n write_v against_o wickliff_n mention_n 110._o a_o book_n of_o his_o own_o send_v to_o the_o bishop_n of_o hereford_n in_o confutation_n of_o the_o book_n of_o walter_n bruit_n in_o a_o word_n wickliff_n doctrine_n be_v not_o contain_v within_o england_n only_o but_o it_o give_v light_a to_o other_o country_n also_o insomuch_o as_o one_o peter_n pain_n 157._o who_o be_v wickliff_n scholar_n and_o be_v send_v with_o other_o legate_n to_o the_o council_n at_o basil_n go_v into_o bohemia_n whither_o he_o carry_v with_o he_o some_o of_o wickliff_n book_n some_o part_n where_o of_o john_n huss●_n translate_v into_o his_o mother_n tongue_n as_o cochleus_fw-la say_v 8._o who_o also_o report_n 7._o how_o one_o of_o the_o bishop_n write_v to_o he_o out_o of_o england_n that_o he_o have_v two_o volume_n of_o wickliff_n which_o be_v almost_o as_o large_a as_o saint_n augustine_n work_n pap_n what_o teach_v wickliff_n teach_v he_o as_o you_o do_v prot._n he_o teach_v the_o same_o in_o substance_n that_o we_o do_v as_o may_v appear_v by_o a_o treatise_n jam●●_n of_o wickliff_n conformity_n with_o the_o now_o church_n of_o england_n both_o in_o doctrine_n and_o discipline_n beside_o we_o may_v take_v a_o taste_n of_o his_o tenet_n out_o of_o his_o treatise_n against_o the_o order_n of_o friar_n wherein_o he_o say_v as_o follow_v first_o 18._o friar_n seyen_v that_o their_o religion_n find_fw-mi on_o sinful_a man_n be_v more_o perfect_a than_o that_o religion_n or_o order_n which_o christ_n himself_o make_v friar_n pursuen_o true_a priest_n and_o let_v they_o to_o preach_v the_o gospel_n ibid._n they_o pursuen_o priest_n for_o they_o reproven_v their_o sin_n as_o god_n bid_v both_o to_o burn_v they_o and_o the_o gospel_n of_o ●hrist_n write_v in_o english_a to_o most_o learning_n of_o our_o nation_n friar_n send_v out_o idiot_n full_a of_o covetise_n to_o preach_v not_o the_o gospel_n but_o chronicle_n fable_n and_o leasing_n to_o please_v the_o people_n and_o to_o rob_v they_o 13._o friar_n 15._o by_o letter_n of_o fraternity_n deceve_v the_o people_n in_o faith_n robben_fw-mi they_o of_o temporal_a good_n and_o maken_v the_o people_n to_o trust_v more_o in_o dead_a parchment_n seal_v with_o leasing_n and_o in_o vain_a prayer_n of_o hypocrite_n than_o in_o the_o help_n of_o god_n friar_n 16._o perverten_a the_o right_a faith_n of_o the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o auter_n and_o bringen_fw-mi a_o new_a heresy_n they_o say_v it_o be_v a_o accident_n without_o subject_n which_o heresy_n come_v never_o into_o the_o church_n till_o the_o foul_a fiend_n satanas_fw-la be_v unbounden_a after_o a_o thousand_o year_n friar_n 19_o be_v make_v bishop_n robben_fw-mi man_n by_o extortion_n as_o in_o punish_v of_o sin_n for_o money_n and_o suffren_a man_n to_o lie_v in_o sin_n get_v of_o antichrist_n false_a exemption_n friar_n 20._o teachen_fw-ge lord_n and_o namely_o lady_n that_o if_o they_o dyen_v in_o francis_n habit_n they_o shall_v never_o come_v in_o hell_n for_o the_o virtue_n thereof_o man_n sayen_v
such_o witness_n as_o be_v produce_v in_o th●●_n treatise_n for_o proof_n of_o the_o protestant_n religion_n dispose_v according_a to_o the_o time_n wherein_o they_o flourish_v witness_n produce_v in_o the_o first_o age_n from_o christ_n birth_n to_o 100_o year_n christ_n jesus_n the_o twelve_o apostle_n saint_n paul_n and_o the_o church_n of_o the_o roman_n and_o other_o anno_fw-la 63._o joseph_n of_o arimathea_n who_o bring_v christianity_n into_o britain_n 70._o dionysius_n areopagita_n the_o book_n that_o bear_v his_o name_n seem_v to_o be_v write_v in_o the_o four_o or_o five_o age_n after_o christ._n 100_o ignatius_n the_o martyr_n in_o the_o second_o age_n from_o 100_o to_o 200._o 150_o justine_n martyr_n 166_o hegesippus_n 169._o the_o church_n of_o smyrna_n touch_v the_o martyrdom_n of_o their_o bishop_n polycap_n 170_o melito_n bishop_n of_o sardys_n 177_o pope_n eleutherius_fw-la his_o epistle_n to_o lucius_n the_o first_o christian_a king_n of_o britain_n 180_o polycrates_n of_o ephesus_n and_o the_o eastern_a church_n touch_v the_o keep_n of_o easter_n 180_o irenaeus_n bishop_n of_o lion_n 200_o clemens_n alexandrinus_n in_o the_o three_o age_n from_o 200_o to_o 300._o 201_o tertullian_n 230_o origen_n 230_o minutius_n fellix_fw-la 250_o cyprian_a bishop_n of_o carthage_n 300_o arnobius_n 300._o lactantius_n anno_fw-la 291_o amphibalus_fw-la and_o his_o associate_n martyr_v in_o britain_n and_o saint_n alban_n ann_n 303._o in_o the_o four_o age_n from_o 300_o to_o 400._o 310_o a_o council_n at_o eliberis_n in_o spain_n 317_o constantine_n the_o great_a 325_o the_o first_o general_n council_n at_o nice_a against_o the_o arrian_n 330_o eusebius_n bishop_n of_o caesarea_n 337_o ephraim_n the_o syrian_a 340_o athanasius_n bishop_n of_o alexandria_n 360_o hilary_n bishop_n of_o poitiers_n 364_o a_o council_n at_o laodicea_n 370_o macarius_n the_o egyptian_a monk_n 370_o cyril_n bishop_n of_o jerusalem_n 370_o optatus_n bishop_n of_o mela_n in_o africa_n 370_o ambrose_n bishop_n of_o milan_n 370_o basil_n the_o great_a bishop_n of_o caesarea_n 370_o gregory_n nazianzen_n 380_o gregory_n nyssen_n bishop_n of_o nyssa_n in_o cappadocia_n brother_n to_o basil._n 381_o the_o second_o general_a council_n at_o constantinople_n where_o macedonius_n be_v condemn_v 390_o epiphanius_n bish._n of_o salamine_n in_o cyprus_n in_o the_o five_o age_n from_o 400_o to_o 500_o 406_o s._n chrysostome_n bish._n of_o constantinople_n andr._n rivet_n critici_fw-la sacri_fw-la 415_o s._n hierome_n idem_fw-la 420_o s._n augustinus_n 429_o palladius_n send_v by_o pope_n celestine_n into_o scotland_n and_o germanus_n by_o the_o french_a bishop_n into_o britain_n to_o beat_v down_o pelagianism_n 430_o vincentius_n lirinensis_n write_v against_o the_o pelagian_n and_o nestorian_n 430_o cyril_n bishop_n of_o alexandria_n 430_o theodoret_n the_o historian_n bish._n of_o cyrene_n 431_o the_o three_o general_a council_n at_o ephesus_n where_o nestorius_n be_v condemn_v &_o deprive_v 450_o leo_n the_o great_a 451_o the_o four_o general_a council_n at_o chalcedon_n where_o dioscurus_n &_o eutyches_n be_v conden_v 490_o gelasius_n the_o pope_n in_o the_o six_o age_n from_o 500_o to_o 600._o 520_o cassiodore_n abbot_n of_o ravenna_n 520_o fulgentius_n bishop_n of_o ruspa_n in_o africa_n 529_o a_o council_n at_o aurange_a against_o semipelagian_n and_o massilian_n 540_o justus_n orgelitanus_n claruit_fw-la ann_n 540._o trithem_n de_fw-fr scriptor_n ecclesiast_n 545_o junilius_n episcopus_fw-la africanus_n 545_o primasius_n a_o bishop_n of_o africa_n bellar._n de_fw-fr scriptor_n ecclesiast_n 540_o rhemigius_n bish._n of_o rheims_n andr._n rivet_n 553_o the_o five_o general_n councili_n at_o constantinople_n to_o confirm_v the_o nicen_n council_n 560_o dracontius_n 580_o venantius_n fortunatus_n bish._n of_o poitiers_n a_o poet_n and_o historian_n 596_o augustine_n the_o monk_n mellitus_n and_o laurence_n send_v into_o britain_n by_o pope_n gregory_n 596_o the_n britain_n faith_n 600_o columbanus_n or_o saint_n colme_z of_o ireland_n in_o the_o seven_o age_n from_o 600_o to_o 700._o 601_o greg._n the_o first_o the_o great_a place_v by_o bellar._n in_o this_o seven_o age_n bell._n the_o script_n eccles._n 601_o hesych_n bish._n of_o jerusalem_n bellar._n ibid._n 630_o isidore_n bishop_n of_o sevill_n disciple_n to_o gregory_n the_o great_a 635_o aidanus_fw-la bishop_n of_o lindasferne_n or_o holy_a island_n and_o finanus_fw-la his_o successor_n 681_o the_o six_o general_n council_n at_o constantinople_n against_o the_o monothelite_n who_o hold_v that_o although_o christ_n have_v two_o nature_n yet_o he_o have_v but_o one_o will_n in_o the_o eight_o age_n from_o 700_o to_o 800._o 720_o venerable_n bede_n the_o saxon._n 740_o joannes_n damascenus_n 740_o antonius_n author_n melissa_n 754_o a_o council_n hold_v at_o constant._n wherein_o be_v condemn_v image_n and_o the_o worshipper_n of_o them●_n 768_o clement_n b._n of_o auxerre_n disciple_n to_o bede_n 787_o the_o second_o council_n at_o nice_a about_o restore_v of_o image_n 790_o alcuinus_fw-la or_o albinus_n a_o englishman_n disciple_n to_o bede_n and_o tutor_n to_o charlemaigne_n this_o alcuinus_fw-la lay_v the_o foundation_n of_o the_o university_n of_o paris_n 794_o a_o council_n at_o frankford_n wherein_o be_v condemn_v the_o second_o council_n of_o nice_a for_o approve_v the_o worship_v of_o image_n 800_o carolus_n magnus_n and_o libri_fw-la carolini_n in_o the_o nine_o age_n from_o 800_o to_o 900._o 815_o claudius_n scotus_n 820_o claudius_n taurinensis_n against_o image-worship_n 824_o a_o council_n at_o paris_n about_o image_n 830_o christianus_n druthmarus_n the_o monk_n of_o corbey_n 830_o agobard_n bishop_n of_o lion_n 840_o rabanus_n maurus_n bishop_n of_o mentz_n disciple_n to_o al●win_n 840_o haymo_n bishop_n of_o halberstadt_n cousin_n to_o bede_n 840_o walafridus_n strabus_n abbot_n of_o fulda_n disciple_n to_o rabanus_n he_o collect_v the_o ordinary_a gloss_n on_o the_o bible_n trithem_n de_fw-fr script_n eccles._n 861_o hulderick_n bishop_n of_o auspurge_n 862_o john_n mallerosse_n the_o scottish_a divine_a or_o joannes_n scotus_n erigena_n he_o be_v slay_v by_o the_o monk_n of_o malmsbury_n 860_o photius_n patriarch_n of_o constantinople_n he_o write_v the_o nomo-canon_n 876_o bertram_n a_o monk_n and_o priest_n of_o france_n 890_o rhemigius_n monk_n of_o auxerre_n he_o write_v upon_o saint_n matthew_n 890_o ambrose_n ansbertus_n the_o french_a monk_n in_o the_o ten_o age_n from_o 900_o to_o 1000_o 910_o radulphus_fw-la flaviacensis_fw-la monachus_n bellarm_n quò_fw-la suprà_fw-la 950_o stephanus_n eduensis_n monachus_n idem_fw-la 950_o smaragdus_n the_o abbot_n 975_o abbot_n aelfrick_n and_o his_o saxon_a homily_n and_o his_o saxon_a treatise_n of_o the_o old_a and_o new_a testament_n both_o translate_v into_o english_a in_o the_o eleven_o age_n from_o 1000_o to_o 1100._o 1007_o fulbert_n bishop_n of_o chartres_n 1050_o oecumenius_n 1050_o berengarius_fw-la 1060_o radulphus_fw-la arden_n 1070_o theophylact_fw-mi archbish._n of_o the_o bulgarian_n 1080_o anselm_n archbishop_n of_o canterbury_n 1090_o hildebert_n archbishop_n of_o tours_n 1100_o anselmus_fw-la laudunensis_n collector_n of_o the_o interlinear_n gloss_n in_o the_o twelve_o age_n from_o 1100_o to_o 1200._o 1101_o zacharias_n chrysopolitanus_n 1120_o rupertus_n tuitiensis_n 1130_o hugo_n de_fw-fr sancto_fw-la victore_fw-la 1130_o bernardus_n clarae-vallensis_a 1130_o peter_n bruis_n and_o henry_n of_o tholouse_n 1140_o peter_n lombard_n master_n of_o the_o sentence_n 1150_o petrus_n cluniacensis_fw-la 1158_o joannes_n sarisburiensis_n 1160_o petrus_n blesensis_n archdeacon_n of_o bath_n 1170_o gratianus_n 1170_o hildegard_n the_o prophetess_n trithem_n 1195_o joachimus_n abbas_n 1200_o nicetas_n choniates_n in_o the_o thirteen_o age_n from_o 1200_o to_o 1300._o 1206_o gul._n altissiodorensis_n 1215_o council_n lateranense_n &_o cuthb_n tonstal_n dunelm_n episcop_n de_fw-fr eodem_fw-la 1220_o honorius_n augustodunensis_n bellarm._n 1230_o gulielmus_fw-la alvernus_n parisiensis_fw-la episcopus_fw-la 1230_o petrus_n de_fw-fr vineis_fw-la trithem_n 1240_o alexander_n de_fw-fr hales_n 1250_o gerardus_n and_o dulcinus_n 1250_o hugo_n cardinalis_fw-la 1250_o robert_n groute-head_n or_o grosseteste_a bishop_n of_o lincoln_n 1256_o gulielmus_fw-la de_fw-la sancto_fw-la amore._n 1260_o thomas_n aquinas_n 1260_o bonaventura_n 1260_o arnoldus_fw-la de_fw-la nouâ_fw-la villâ_fw-la 1300_o joannes_n duns_n scotus_n in_o the_o fourteen_o age_n from_o 1300_o to_o 1400._o 1303_o barlaam_n the_o monk_n and_o nilus_n archbishop_n of_o thessalonica_n 1320_o gulielmus_fw-la ockam_n 1320_o nicol._n de_fw-fr lyra_n a_o convert_a jew_n who_o comment_v on_o all_o the_o bible_n 1320_o marsilius_n patavinus_n 1320_o michael_n cesena_n trithem_n 1320_o dante_n be_v 1320_o durandus_fw-la de_fw-la s._n portiano_n 1330_o alvarus_n pelagius_n 1340_o johannes_n the_o rupe-scissâ_a trithem_n 1340_o thomas_n bradwardin_n 1343_o the_o king_n of_o england_n oppose_v papal_a provision_n and_o appeal_v anno_fw-la 1391._o 1350_o richardus_fw-la armachanus_fw-la 1350_o robert_n holcot_n the_o englishman_n 1350_o francis_n petrarch_n bellarm._n 1350_o taulerus_n a_o preacher_n at_o strasbrough_n bellarm._n 1370_o saint_n bridge●_n 1370_o john_n wickliff_n and_o
they_o do_v mean_v the_o pope_n for_o the_o time_n be_v now_o to_o this_o height_n the_o pope_n come_v under_o pretence_n of_o the_o church_n government_n the_o church_n discipline_n rack_a the_o spiritual_a censure_n to_o a_o civil_a punishment_n by_o the_o church_n solemnity_n in_o crown_a emperor_n by_o his_o excommunication_n absolution_n and_o dispensation_n he_o rise_v to_o his_o greatness_n of_o state_n by_o the_o doctrine_n of_o work_n meritorious_a jubilee_n pardon_n and_o indulgence_n he_o maintain_v his_o state_n and_o now_o i_o come_v to_o show_v out_o of_o good_a author_n that_o in_o nine_o several_a weighty_a point_n of_o religion_n the_o best_a guide_n of_o god_n church_n for_o the_o space_n of_o 1500_o year_n have_v teach_v as_o the_o church_n of_o england_n do_v the_o first_o centurie_n from_o the_o first_o year_n of_o grace_n unto_o the_o year_n one_o hundred_o christ_n jesus_n and_o his_o apostle_n the_o protestant_n founder_n papist_n who_o do_v you_o name_n in_o this_o first_o age_n that_o teach_v the_o protestant_a faith_n protestant_n i_o name_v our_o bless_a saviour_n christ_n jesus_n and_o his_o apostle_n saint_n paul_n and_o his_o scholar_n titus_n and_o timothy_n together_o with_o the_o church_n which_o they_o plant_v as_o that_o of_o the_o roman_n corinthian_n and_o the_o rest_n these_o i_o name_n for_o our_o first_o founder_n and_o top_n of_o our_o kin_n as_o also_o joseph_n of_o arimathea_n that_o bury_v christ_n body_n a_o special_a benefactor_n to_o the_o religion_n plant_v in_o this_o land_n these_o teach_v for_o substance_n and_o in_o the_o positive_a ground_n of_o religion_n as_o we_o do_v in_o our_o article_n liturgy_n homily_n and_o apology_n by_o public_a authority_n establish_v in_o our_o church_n of_o england_n beside_o these_o there_o be_v but_o few_o writer_n in_o this_o age_n who_o undoubted_a work_n have_v come_v to_o our_o hand_n yet_o for_o instance_n sake_n i_o name_v that_o bless_a martyr_n of_o christ_n ignatius_n bishop_n of_o antioch_n who_o for_o the_o name_n of_o jesus_n be_v sentence_v to_o be_v devour_v of_o wild_a beast_n which_o he_o patient_o endure_v say_v 33._o i_o be_o the_o wheat_n or_o grain_n to_o be_v ground_n with_o the_o tooth_n of_o beast_n that_o i_o may_v be_v pure_a bread_n for_o my_o master_n tooth_n let_v fire_n rack_n pulley_n yea_o and_o all_o the_o torment_n of_o hell_n come_v on_o i_o so_o i_o may_v win_v christ._n here_o also_o according_a to_o the_o roman_a register_n i_o may_v place_v dionysius_n areopagita_n who_o they_o usual_o place_v in_o this_o first_o age_n as_o if_o he_o be_v that_o denys_n mention_v in_o the_o 17.34_o act_n whereas_o indeed_o he_o be_v a_o post_n natus_fw-la and_o in_o all_o likelihood_n live_v about_o the_o four_o age_n and_o not_o in_o this_o first_o for_o denys_n demophil_n say_v that_o the_o christian_n have_v solemn_a temple_n like_o the_o jew_n and_o the_o chancel_n sever_v with_o such_o and_o such_o sanctification_n from_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o church_n whereas_o the_o christian_n in_o this_o fi●st_a age_n make_v their_o assembly_n to_o prayer_n both_o in_o such_o private_a place_n and_o with_o such_o simplicity_n as_o the_o apostle_n 8._o do_v and_o as_o the_o time_n of_o persecution_n suffer_v 6._o they_o again_o denys_n tell_v we_o that_o when_o he_o write_v monk_n be_v rise_v 6._o and_o they_o of_o credit_n in_o the_o church_n and_o many_o ceremony_n to_o hallow_v they_o whereas_o in_o the_o apostle_n time_n when_o the_o true_a dionysius_n live_v monk_n be_v not_o hear_v of_o yea_o chrysostome_n say_v hebr._n that_o when_o paul_n write_v his_o epistle_n to_o the_o hebrew_n there_o be_v not_o then_o so_o much_o as_o any_o footstep_n of_o a_o monk_n pa._n i_o challenge_v saint_n denys_n for_o we_o he_o be_v as_o our_o rhemist_n 17._o say_v all_o for_o the_o catholic_n pro._n take_v he_o as_o he_o be_v and_o as_o he_o come_v to_o our_o hand_n he_o be_v not_o whole_o you_o but_o in_o some_o thing_n clean_o contrary_a to_o you_o as_o namely_o in_o the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o lord_n supper_n wherein_o you_o vary_v from_o we_o most_o beside_o he_o have_v not_o your_o sole_a receive_n of_o the_o priest_n nor_o minister_a under_o one_o kind_n to_o they_o who_o receive_v nor_o exhortation_n lesson_n prayer_n in_o a_o tongue_n which_o the_o people_n understand_v not_o he_o have_v not_o your_o invocation_n of_o saint_n no●_n adoration_n of_o creature_n nor_o sacrifice_v of_o christ_n to_o god_n nor_o pray_v for_o the_o soul_n in_o purgatory_n so_o that_o in_o thing_n of_o substance_n and_o not_o of_o ceremony_n only_o he_o be_v we_o and_o not_o you_o as_o i_o hope_v will_v appear_v by_o his_o write_n for_o we_o will_v for_o the_o time_n suppose_v he_o to_o be_v a_o father_n of_o this_o first_o age_n although_o the_o book_n which_o bear_v saint_n denys_n his_o name_n seem_v to_o be_v write_v in_o the_o four_o or_o five_o age_n after_o christ._n pap_n can_v you_o prove_v that_o christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n teach_v as_o you_o do_v pro._n we_o have_v clear_a testimony_n of_o scripture_n etc._n which_o appoint_v god_n people_n to_o receive_v the_o bless_a cup_n in_o the_o sacrament_n and_o to_o be_v present_a at_o such_o a_o divine_a service_n as_o themselves_o understand_v etc._n we_o have_v express_v command_n forbid_v image-worship_n 4.15_o against_o invocation_n of_o saint_n it_o be_v say_v 63.16_o that_o abraham_n know_v we_o not_o and_o isaac_n be_v ignorant_a of_o we_o and_o the_o bless_a angel_n refuse_v all_o religious_a honour_n and_o adoration_n 9_o likewise_o against_o merit_n of_o work_n and_o work_n of_o super-erogation_a it_o be_v say_v 8.18_o that_o the_o suffering_n of_o this_o present_a time_n be_v not_o worthy_a to_o be_v compare_v with_o the_o glory_n which_o shall_v be_v reveal_v in_o we_o and_o that_o we_o be_v unprofitable_a servant_n when_o we_o have_v do_v all_o that_o be_v command_v we_o we_o have_v but_o do_v that_o which_o be_v our_o duty_n to_o do_v and_o the_o like_a pa._n you_o allege_v scripture_n and_o so_o do_v we_o yea_o in_o some_o thing_n the_o scripture_n be_v plain_a for_o we_o as_o where_o it_o be_v say_v 26.26_o this_o be_v my_o body_n pro._n what_o though_o it_o make_v for_o you_o in_o show_n so_o do_v it_o for_o the_o anabaptist_n where_o it_o be_v say_v 4.32_o that_o the_o christian_n have_v all_o thing_n common_a you_o will_v not_o hence_o infer_v that_o because_o in_o such_o a_o extremity_n their_o charity_n for_o the_o relief_n of_o other_o make_v thing_n common_a concern_v the_o use_n that_o therefore_o we_o shall_v have_v no_o property_n in_o the_o good_n that_o god_n have_v give_v we_o it_o be_v not_o the_o show_n and_o semblance_n of_o word_n but_o the_o sense_n thereof_o that_o import_v the_o truth_n saint_n paul_n say_v of_o his_o corinth_n 12.27_o you_o be_v the_o body_n of_o christ_n yet_o not_o mean_v any_o transubstantiation_n of_o substance_n but_o hereof_o anon_o in_o his_o due_a place_n pa._n the_o scripture_n make_v not_o for_o you_o but_o as_o you_o have_v translate_v they_o pro._n for_o any_o point_n we_o hold_v we_o refer_v ourselves_o to_o the_o original_n yea_o we_o say_v further_o let_v the_o indifferent_a christian_a reader_n who_o have_v but_o tolerable_a understanding_n of_o the_o latin_a tongue_n compare_v our_o english_a translation_n with_o those_o which_o your_o own_o man_n pagnine_a arias_n montanus_n and_o other_o have_v publish_v and_o they_o will_v find_v but_o little_a countenance_n for_o popery_n and_o namely_o for_o communion_n in_o one_o kind_n and_o service_n in_o a_o strange_a tongue_n which_o as_o be_v already_o prove_v have_v be_v decree_v direct_o contrary_a to_o god_n express_a word_n but_o let_v we_o come_v to_o the_o particular_n of_o the_o scripture_n sufficiency_n and_o canon_n the_o church_n of_o england_n hold_v ar●i●_n that_o holy_a scripture_n contain_v all_o thing_n necessary_a to_o salvation_n so_o that_o the●e_n be_v no_o doctrine_n scripture_n necessary_a for_o our_o everlasting_a salvation_n but_o that_o be_v or_o may_v be_v draw_v out_o of_o that_o fountain_n of_o truth_n as_o be_v either_o express_o therein_o contain_v or_o such_o as_o by_o sound_a inference_n may_v be_v deduce_v from_o thence_o and_o this_o be_v witness_v by_o saint_n paul_n say_v that_o 17._o they_o be_v able_a to_o make_v we_o wise_a unto_o salvation_n that_o the_o man_n of_o god_n may_v be_v perfect_v and_o thorough_o furnish_v unto_o all_o good_a work_n which_o they_o shall_v not_o be_v able_a to_o do_v if_o they_o contain_v not_o a_o perfect_a doctrine_n of_o all_o such_o point_n of_o faith_n as_o we_o be_v bind_v to_o believe_v and_o duty_n to_o be_v practise_v and_o if_o it_o be_v say_v that_o s._n paul_n speak_v of_o the_o man_n of_o god_n such_o a_o one_o as_o
of_o they_o 5._o as_o former_o clemens_n alexandrinus_n have_v do_v concern_v saintly_o invocation_n origen_n say_v 432._o we_o must_v endeavour_v to_o please_v god_n alone_o and_o labour_n to_o have_v he_o propitious_a unto_o we_o procure_v his_o goodwill_n with_o godl●nesse_n and_o all_o kind_n of_o virtue_n and_o if_o celsus_n will_v yet_o have_v we_o to_o procure_v the_o goodwill_n of_o any_o other_o after_o he_o that_o be_v god_n over_o all_o let_v he_o consider_v that_o as_o when_o the_o body_n be_v move_v the_o motion_n of_o the_o shadow_n thereof_o do_v follow_v it_o so_o in_o like_a manner_n have_v god_n favourable_a unto_o we_o who_o be_v over_o all_o it_o follow_v that_o we_o shall_v have_v all_o his_o friend_n both_o angel_n and_o soul_n and_o spirit_n love_v unto_o we_o and_o whereas_o celsus_n have_v say_v of_o the_o angel_n that_o they_o belong_v to_o god_n and_o in_o that_o respect_n we_o be_v to_o pray_v unto_o they_o that_o they_o may_v be_v favourable_a to_o we_o to_o this_o origen_n answer_v in_o this_o manner_n 406._o away_o with_o celsus_n his_o council_n say_v that_o we_o must_v pray_v to_o angel_n for_o we_o must_v pray_v to_o he_o alone_o who_o be_v god_n over_o all_o and_o we_o must_v pray_v to_o the_o word_n of_o god_n his_o only_a beget_v and_o the_o first_o bear_v of_o all_o creature_n and_o we_o must_v entreat_v he_o that_o he_o as_o high_a priest_n will_v present_v our_o prayer_n when_o it_o come_v to_o he_o unto_o his_o god_n and_o our_o god_n objection_n jesuit_n fisher_n say_v reply_n that_o origen_n in_o his_o write_n upon_o job_n job_n and_o number_n num_fw-la teach_v invocation_n of_o saint_n answer_n bellarmine_n say_v origen_n that_o origen_n be_v not_o the_o author_n of_o those_o book_n upon_o job_n for_o therein_o be_v mention_v make_v of_o the_o homousian_o so_o the_o arrian_n call_v the_o orthodox_n believer_n now_o the_o arrian_n rise_v not_o till_o after_o origen_n time_n origen_n indeed_o upon_o the_o canticle_n say_v 2._o it_o be_v not_o inconvenient_a to_o say_v that_o the_o saint_n pray_v for_o we_o and_o in_o his_o homily_n upon_o josuah_n he_o ●aith_o 16._o i_o do_v think_v thus_o that_o all_o those_o father_n who_o be_v depart_v this_o life_n before_o we_o do_v assist_v we_o with_o their_o prayer_n and_o in_o another_o place_n he_o say_v 2._o if_o the_o saint_n that_o have_v leave_v the_o body_n and_o be_v with_o christ_n do_v any_o thing_n and_o labour_n for_o we_o let_v this_o also_o remain_v among_o the_o hide_a thing_n of_o god_n and_o mystery_n that_o be_v not_o to_o be_v commit_v unto_o writing_n now_o we_o yield_v that_o the_o saint_n pray_v for_o we_o in_o general_a yet_o hence_o it_o follow_v not_o that_o we_o shall_v direct_v our_o prayer_n to_o they_o beside_o origen_n if_o and_o as_o i_o suppose_v and_o it_o be_v not_o inconvenient_a to_o say_v so_o these_o be_v but_o ●aint_a affirmation_n show_v that_o he_o speak_v doubtful_o as_o on_o not_o full_o resolve_v that_o it_o be_v so_o and_o in_o conclusion_n determine_v si_fw-la laborant_fw-la pro_fw-la nobis_fw-la if_o in_o particular_a upon_o particular_n they_o do_v labour_n for_o we_o yet_o it_o be_v among_o god_n secret_n and_o a_o mystery_n not_o to_o be_v commit_v to_o writing_n object_n it_o appear_v by_o saint_n cyprian_n virg_n that_o the_o faithful_a use_v to_o covenant_n in_o their_o life_n time_n that_o whether_o of_o they_o go_v to_o heaven_n before_o the_o other_o he_o shall_v pray_v for_o his_o survive_a friend_n answer_n concern_v saint_a cyprian_n conceit_n that_o the_o saint_n after_o death_n remember_v their_o old_a friend_n here_o as_o have_v take_v fresh_a and_o particular_a notice_n of_o their_o several_a state_n vote_n and_o necessity_n it_o follow_v not_o thence_o that_o other_o saint_n unacquainted_a with_o our_o particular_a desire_n and_o exigent_n do_v in_o particular_a and_o by_o their_o merit_n intercede_v for_o the_o live_n and_o though_o they_o shall_v make_v suit_n on_o our_o behalf_n yet_o we_o have_v no_o warrant_n to_o pray_v to_o they_o to_o close_v up_o this_o point_n of_o prayer_n to_o saint_n tertullian_n cyprian_n gregory_n nyssen_n with_o other_o have_v write_v set_v treatise_n the_o oratione_fw-la of_o prayer_n and_o therein_o they_o deliver_v nothing_o touch_v this_o saintly_o invocation_n but_o teach_v we_o to_o regulate_v dom._n all_o our_o prayer_n according_a to_o that_o perfect_a pattern_n prescribe_v by_o our_o great_a master_n wherein_o we_o be_v require_v to_o direct_v our_o petition_n unto_o our_o father_n which_o be_v in_o heaven_n math_n 6.9_o luk._n 11.2_o these_o thing_n say_v tertullian_n 30._o in_o his_o apology_n for_o the_o christian_n in_o his_o time_n i_o may_v not_o pray_v for_o from_o any_o other_o but_o from_o he_o of_o who_o i_o know_v i_o shall_v obtain_v they_o because_o both_o it_o be_v he_o who_o be_v alone_o able_a to_o give_v and_o i_o be_o he_o unto_o who_o it_o appertain_v to_o obtain_v that_o which_o be_v request_v be_v his_o servant_n qui_fw-la eum_fw-la solum_fw-la observo_fw-la who_o observe_v he_o alone_o of_o faith_n and_o merit_n origen_n say_v 3._o that_o faith_n only_o suffice_v to_o justification_n and_o concern_v merit_n the_o same_o origen_n say_v 4._o i_o ca●●ardly_o he_o persuade_v that_o there_o can_v be_v any_o work_n which_o may_v require_v the_o reward_n of_o god_n by_o way_n of_o debt_n see_v this_o very_a thing_n itself_o that_o we_o can_v do_v or_o think_v or_o speak_v any_o thing_n we_o do_v it_o by_o his_o gift_n and_o largesse_n objection_n do_v not_o origen_n and_o tertullian_n hold_v purgatory_n answer_n bellarmine_n indeed_o allege_v tertio_fw-la tertullia_n book_n de_fw-la animâ_fw-la for_o proof_n of_o purgatory_n but_o it_o be_v well_o know_v ult_n that_o he_o be_v lead_v with_o the_o spirit_n of_o montanus_n the_o heretic_n when_o he_o write_v that_o book_n and_o for_o origen_n bellarmine_n por●●_n confess_v he_o be_v one_o of_o those_o who_o approve_a so_o much_o of_o purgatory_n that_o he_o acknowledge_v no_o other_o pain_n after_o this_o life_n but_o purgatory_n penalty_n only_o so_o that_o with_o he_o hell_n and_o purgatory_n be_v all_o one_o objection_n in_o saint_n cyprian_n time_n 22._o the_o martyr_n entreat_v the_o church_n for_o mitigation_n of_o penance_n impose_v upon_o some_o offender_n so_o that_o the_o satisfaction_n and_o suffer_v of_o martyr_n be_v communicate_v to_o other_o and_o thereby_o their_o indulgence_n or_o pardon_n be_v procure_v answer_n in_o those_o time_n of_o persecution_n when_o many_o weak_a one_o fall_v away_o from_o the_o open_a profession_n of_o the_o truth_n and_o sacrifice_v to_o idol_n the_o church_n seek_v by_o all_o mean_n to_o honour_n martyrdom_n and_o encourage_v christian_n thereunto_o so_o that_o upon_o the_o request_n of_o imprison_a confessor_n and_o design_v martyr_n the_o bishop_n be_v wont_a to_o release_v some_o time_n the_o canonical_a censure_n enjoin_v by_o the_o church_n but_o these_o martyr_n do_v not_o hereby_o think_v that_o they_o have_v make_v satisfaction_n for_o the_o temporal_a pain_n of_o sin_n beside_o this_o be_v speak_v of_o live_a martyr_n and_o not_o of_o martyr_n defunct_a and_o of_o release_n censure_n &_o forgive_a fault_n in_o this_o world_n only_o &_o not_o in_o purgatory_n pa._n do_v not_o cyprian_n hold_v saint_n peter_n supremacy_n pro._n he_o may_v do_v much_o with_o pamelius_n his_o help_n who_o have_v take_v the_o marginal_a gloss_n petro_n primatus_fw-la datur_fw-la and_o put_v 89._o it_o into_o cyprian_n text_n whereas_o cyprian_n in_o the_o selfsame_a treatise_n say_v eccl●siae_fw-la the_o rest_n of_o the_o apostle_n be_v even_o the_o same_o that_o peter_n be_v be_v endue_v with_o the_o like_a fellowship_n of_o honour_n and_o power_n cyprian_a indeed_o reverence_v the_o sea_n of_o rome_n yet_o will_v he_o have_v she_o keep_v within_o h●r_a bound_n as_o appear_v in_o the_o case_n of_o fortu●atus_n and_o other_o for_o so_o it_o be_v cyprian_n have_v censure_v they_o and_o fear_v lest_o they_o shall_v fly_v to_o rome_n and_o there_o seek_v favour_n and_o protection_n from_o that_o sea_n and_o so_o work_v distraction_n between_o rome_n and_o carthage_n make_v a_o decree_n to_o prevent_v appeal_v to_o other_o place_n or_o claim_v of_o other_o bishop_n and_o this_o synodall_n epistle_n be_v send_v to_o pope_n corn●lius_n persuade_v he_o not_o to_o admit_v of_o their_o complaint_n see_v that_o it_o be_v decree_v of_o we_o all_o say_v s._n cyprian_n 55._o that_o it_o be_v meet_v and_o right_a that_o every_o man_n cause_n be_v hear_v where_o the_o crime_n be_v commit_v and_o every_o pastor_n have_v commit_v unto_o he_o a_o portion_n of_o the_o flock_n of_o christ_n which_o he_o be_v to_o govern_v and_o whereof_o he_o be_v to_o give_v a_o account_n unto_o god_n and_o they_o who_o be_v under_o our_o
government_n ought_v not_o to_o gad_n and_o wander_v but_o they_o shall_v plead_v their_o cause_n there_o where_o both_o accuser_n and_o witness_n may_v be_v have_v except_o some_o few_o desperate_a and_o naughty_a fellow_n think_v the_o authority_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o africa_n which_o have_v already_o judge_v and_o condemn_v they_o to_o be_v l●sse_n mean_v less_o than_o that_o of_o cornelius_n to_o who_o they_o flee_v here_o we_o find_v opposition_n make_v to_o the_o sea_n of_o rome_n by_o that_o catholic_a altera_fw-la martyr_n cyprian_n and_o other_o even_o in_o the_o weighty_a point_n of_o appeal_v for_o so_o bellarmine_n 21._o make_v appeal_n to_o rome_n and_o not_o appeal_n from_o thence_o a_o main●_n proof_n of_o the_o pope_n supremacy_n now_o to_o close_v up_o this_o age_n and_o to_o look_v a_o little_a homeward_o all_o this_o time_n the_o christian_a religion_n flourish_v quiet_o in_o britain_n till_o in_o dioclesian_n day_n which_o make_v up_o the_o ten_o persecution_n their_o church_n be_v demolish_v their_o bible_n burn_a their_o priest_n and_o their_o flock_n murder_v for_o now_o be_v saint_n alban_n behead_v 303._o at_o the_o city_n verulam_n now_o call_v after_o he_o saint_a alban_n of_o who_o fortunatus_n presbyter_n a_o ancient_a poet_n say_v albanum_fw-la egregium_fw-la foecunda_fw-la britannia_fw-la profert_n fruitful_a britain_n bring_v forth_o alban_n a_o martyr_n of_o great_a worth_n he_o be_v the_o first_o that_o in_o britain_n suffer_v death_n for_o christ_n his_o sake_n whereupon_o he_o be_v call_v our_o stephen_n and_o the_o proto-martyr_n of_o britain_n in_o like_a sort_n his_o teacher_n or_o instructor_n amphibalus_fw-la ibid._n be_v cruel_o martyr_a at_o the_o same_o place_n be_v whip_v about_o a_o stake_n whereat_o his_o entrails_n be_v tie_v and_o thus_o wind_a his_o bowel_n out_o of_o his_o body_n be_v at_o last_o stone_v to_o death_n so_o also_o be_v julius_n and_o aaron_n 19_o martyr_a at_o leicester_n and_o in_o lichfield_n so_o many_o that_o the_o place_n become_v another_o colgatha_n or_o field_n of_o dead_a corpse_n for_o which_o cause_n the_o city_n do_v bear_v a_o field_n charge_v with_o many_o martyr_n diverse_o torture_v they_o bear_v it_o for_o their_o seal_n of_o arm_n even_o unto_o this_o day_n as_o master_n camden_n have_v record_v now_o these_o martyr_n they_o suffer_v for_o that_o truth_n which_o we_o at_o this_o day_n hold_v and_o not_o for_o popish_a tenet_n which_o then_o be_v not_o in_o be_v we_o have_v now_o survey_v the_o father_n faith_n and_o practice_n of_o the_o church_n for_o the_o first_o three_o hundred_o year_n next_o after_o christ_n and_o by_o this_o particular_a as_o hercules_n whole_a body_n be_v measure_v by_o the_o breadth_n of_o his_o foot_n the_o reader_n may_v proportion_v what_o be_v the_o church_n creed_n and_o her_o agend_n general_o and_o constant_o teach_v and_o practise_v in_o these_o time_n and_o i_o doubt_v not_o but_o he_o shall_v find_v that_o for_o substance_n of_o religion_n they_o hold_v as_o we_o do_v and_o not_o as_o the_o modern_a papist_n do_v so_o that_o in_o comparison_n of_o original_a and_o primitive_a antiquity_n popery_n be_v but_o novelty_n and_o this_o have_v be_v already_o show_v when_o as_o we_o draw_v the_o character_n of_o the_o three_o first_o century_n i_o will_v now_o only_o give_v instance_n in_o the_o point_n of_o indulgence_n and_o show_v that_o in_o these_o best_a and_o ancient_a time_n there_o be_v no_o such_o pope_n pardon_n as_o afterward_o be_v mart_v for_o in_o latter_a time_n we_o find_v it_o record_v in_o the_o salisbury_n primer_n 1529._o that_o john_n the_o two_o and_o twenty_o for_o the_o mumble_n over_o of_o some_o short_a prayer_n grant_v a_o pardon_n of_o no_o less_o than_o a_o million_o of_o year_n beside_o these_o three_o prayer_n be_v write_v in_o the_o chapel_n of_o the_o holy_a cross_n in_o rome_n who_o that_o devout_o say_v they_o they_o shall_v obtain_v ten_o hundred_o thousand_o year_n of_o pardon_n for_o deadly_a sin_n grant_v by_o our_o holy_a father_n john_n the_o two_o and_o twenty_o pope_n of_o rome_n and_o of_o another_o prayer_n to_o be_v say_v as_o one_o go_v through_o a_o churchyard_n the_o same_o book_n say_v as_o follow_v supra_fw-la pope_n john_n the_o twelve_o grant_v to_o all_o that_o shall_v say_v the_o prayer_n follow_v as_o they_o pass_v by_o any_o churchyard_n as_o many_o year_n of_o indulgence_n as_o there_o have_v be_v body_n there_o bury_v since_o the_o consecration_n of_o the_o say_a churchyard_n in_o the_o same_o book_n there_o be_v power_n give_v to_o one_o little_a prayer_n beginning_n with_o o_o bone_n jesu_n to_o change_v the_o pain_n of_o hell_n into_o purgatory_n and_o after_o that_o again_o the_o pain_n of_o purgatory_n into_o the_o joy_n of_o heaven_n this_o prayer_n be_v write_v in_o a_o table_n that_o hang_v at_o rome_n in_o saint_n peter_n church_n near_o to_o the_o high_a altar_n there_o as_o our_o holy_a father_n the_o pope_n be_v wont_a to_o say_v mass_n and_o who_o so_o that_o devout_o with_o a_o contrite_a heart_n daily_o say_v this_o orison_n if_o he_o be_v that_o day_n in_o the_o state_n of_o eternal_a damnation_n than_o his_o eternal_a pain_n shall_v be_v change_v he_o into_o temporal_a pain_n of_o purgatory_n and_o if_o he_o have_v deserve_v the_o pain_n of_o purgatory_n it_o shall_v be_v forget_v and_o forgive_v through_o the_o infinite_a mercy_n of_o god_n now_o sure_o i_o think_v that_o antiquity_n can_v parallel_v such_o precedent_n as_o these_o the_o four_o centurie_n from_o the_o year_n of_o grace_n 400._o to_o 500_o papist_n what_o say_v you_o to_o this_o four_o age_n protestant_n this_o be_v a_o learned_a age_n 365._o for_o now_o there_o live_v optatus_n bishop_n of_o milevis_n in_o africa_n and_o in_o asia_n there_o live_v epiphanius_n bishop_n of_o cyprus_n cyril_n bishop_n of_o jerusalem_n macharius_fw-la the_o monk_n basil_n the_o great_a the_o christian_a demosthenes_n as_o erasmus_n call_v he_o 3._o gregory_n nazianzen_n surname_v the_o divine_a and_o grigory_n nyssen_n brother_n to_o saint_n basil_n these_o three_o be_v equal_a in_o time_n dear_a friend_n and_o of_o near_a alliance_n now_o also_o live_v the_o hammer_n of_o the_o arrian_n heretic_n athanasius_n the_o great_a bishop_n of_o alexandria_n great_a indeed_o for_o his_o learning_n for_o his_o virtue_n for_o his_o labour_n for_o his_o suffering_n when_o almost_o the_o whole_a world_n be_v set_v against_o he_o but_o above_o all_o great_a for_o his_o creed_n the_o athanasian_n creed_n he_o suffer_v much_o trouble_n for_o the_o truth_n but_o god_n uphold_v he_o so_o that_o he_o die_v in_o peace_n full_a of_o day_n after_o he_o have_v govern_v the_o church_n of_o al●xandria_n six_o and_o forty_o year_n nazianzen_n compare_v athanasij_fw-la he_o in_o time_n of_o adversity_n to_o the_o adamant_n for_o that_o no_o trouble_n can_v break_v he_o and_o in_o time_n of_o prosperity_n to_o the_o loadstone_n for_o that_o he_o allure_v the_o heart_n of_o man_n more_o intractable_a than_o iron_n to_o embrace_v the_o truth_n of_o god_n in_o europe_n there_o live_v hilary_n bishop_n of_o poitiers_n in_o france_n and_o ambrose_n bishop_n or_o milan_n ambrose_n be_v a_o man_n of_o noble_a parentage_n under_o the_o emperor_n valentinian_n he_o be_v governor_n of_o liguria_n he_o be_v choose_v from_o a_o secular_a ●udge_n to_o be_v bishop_n of_o milan_n and_o be_v fain_o to_o be_v christen_v before_o he_o can_v be_v consecrate_v he_o be_v zealous_a and_o resolute_a he_o sharp_o reprove_v theodosius_n for_o the_o slaughter_n of_o the_o innocent_a people_n of_o thessalonica_n he_o be_v grievous_o trouble_v by_o the_o lady_n justina_n mother_n to_o valentinian_n the_o second_o he_o say_v to_o his_o friend_n that_o be_v about_o he_o at_o his_o death_n 398._o i_o have_v not_o so_o live_v that_o i_o be_o ashamed_a to_o live_v long_o nor_o yet_o fear_v i_o death_n because_o i_o have_v a_o good_a lord_n of_o the_o scripture_n sufficiency_n athanasius_n say_v nann●us_n the_o holy_a scripture_n give_v by_o inspiration_n of_o god_n be_v of_o themselves_o sufficient_a to_o the_o discovery_n of_o truth_n now_o if_o they_o be_v as_o the_o word_n signify_v all-sufficient_a to_o instruction_n then_o must_v they_o needs_o be_v all_o sufficient_a to_o all_o instruction_n in_o the_o truth_n intend_v and_o not_o only_o sufficient_a for_o this_o or_o that_o point_n as_o bellarmine_n will_v have_v it_o profert_fw-la saint_n hilary_n commend_v 2._o the_o emperor_n constantius_n for_o desire_v the_o faith_n to_o be_v order_v only_o according_a to_o those_o thing_n that_o be_v write_v th●_n same_o hilary_n 2._o assure_v we_o that_o in_o his_o day_n the_o word_n of_o god_n do_v suffice_v the_o believer_n yea_o what_o be_v there_o say_v he_o concern_v man_n salvation_n that_o be_v not_o contain_v in_o the_o word_n
cruel_a foe_n our_o soul_n defend_v and_o they_o receive_v when_o life_n shall_v end_v the_o cross_n be_v likewise_o devout_o salute_v in_o this_o manner_n quadrage_n o_o crux_fw-la ave_fw-la spes_fw-la unica_fw-la hoc_fw-la passionis_fw-la tempore_fw-la auge_n pijs_fw-la justitiam_fw-la re●sque_fw-la dona_fw-la veniam_fw-la all_o hail_n o_o cross_n our_o only_a hope_n in_o this_o time_n of_o the_o passion_n increase_v thou_o justice_n to_o the_o godly_a and_o give_v to_o sinner_n pardon_v pa._n you_o have_v allege_v divers_a father_n against_o pray_v to_o saint_n give_v i_o now_o leave_v to_o produce_v such_o testimony_n as_o bellarmine_n bring_v in_o 19_o for_o invocation_n of_o saint_n pro._n the_o learned_a bishop●_n on_o our_o side_n bishop_n reply_n andrew_n and_o bishop_n montague_n saint_n have_v particular_o examine_v the_o several_a testimony_n allege_v by_o bellarmine_n and_o find_v that_o he_o have_v utter_o fail_v in_o his_o proof_n pa._n let_v we_o hear_v the_o father_n themselves_o speak_v for_o their_o testimony_n seem_v to_o be_v clear_a for_o we_o for_o instance_n sake_n nazianz●n_o report_v cyprian_a that_o cyprian_a while_o he_o be_v a_o pagan_a and_o a_o conjurer_n he_o fall_v in_o love_n with_o justina_n a_o christian_a virgin_n at_o antioch_n who_o when_o as_o by_o woo_v and_o ordinary_a mean_n he_o can_v not_o win_v to_o his_o will_n he_o go_v about_o to_o entice_v and_o prevail_v with_o by_o magical_a spell_n and_o conjuration_n which_o the_o damsel_n perceive_v beseech_v the_o virgin_n mary_n to_o succour_v she_o be_v a_o distress_a virgin_n pro._n this_o go_v under_o his_o name_n but_o haply_o be_v none_o of_o he_o for_o it_o be_v not_o likely_a that_o nazianzen_n one_o of_o so_o great_a learning_n judgement_n and_o memory_n can_v as_o billius_n speak_v locum_fw-la be_v so_o gross_o mistake_v to_o ascribe_v that_o unto_o saint_n cyprian_a bishop_n of_o carthage_n in_o africa_n that_o if_o it_o be_v at_o all_o be_v do_v by_o one_o cyprian_n the_o deacon_n of_o antioch_n in_o asia_n but_o yet_o say_v it_o be_v nazianzen_n own_o report_n it_o be_v but_o a_o private_a act_n out_o of_o the_o devout_a affection_n in_o a_o maid_n it_o can_v be_v draw_v to_o a_o rule_n of_o faith_n neither_o be_v it_o propose_v as_o a_o example_n to_o be_v follow_v but_o only_o by_o way_n of_o bare_a narration_n what_o she_o do_v the_o relater_n pass_v not_o his_o own_o censure_n upon_o it_o yea_o but_o he_o tax_v it_o not_o though_o he_o do_v not_o yet_o other_o and_o by_o name_n epiphanius_n in_o the_o same_o age_n tax_v such_o of_o that_o sex_n as_o offer_v cake_n and_o the_o like_a present_n and_o oblation_n to_o the_o bless_a virgin_n last_o the_o story_n say_v that_o despair_a of_o all_o other_o remedy_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d she_o fly_v to_o god_n and_o then_o assume_v for_o her_o patron_n and_o protector_n christ_n jesus_n her_o spouse_n and_o after_o this_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d she_o beseech_v the_o virgin_n mary_n to_o succour_v she_o be_v a_o distress_a virgin_n first_o she_o fly_v to_o god_n second_o she_o make_v christ_n her_o patron_n three_o she_o request_v the_o virgin_n mary_n in_o zeal_n rather_o than_o upon_o knowledge_n and_o although_o nazianzen_n speak_v only_o by_o hearsay_n report_v that_o she_o supplicate_v not_o by_o any_o collect_n or_o set_v form_n of_o devotion_n but_o by_o a_o short_a ejaculation_n to_o the_o virgin_n mary_n yet_o this_o be_v do_v by_o she_o in_o the_o last_o place_n and_o after_o she_o have_v first_o seek_v to_o god_n and_o christ_n whereas_o in_o their_o romish_a devotion_n our_o lady_n have_v their_o orison_n first_o address_v to_o she_o and_o our_o lord_n have_v they_o but_o as_o it_o be_v at_o second_o hand_n the_o reversion_n of_o th●m_n pa._n gregory_n nyssen_n call_v to_o theodore_n the_o martyr_n say_v theodor._n gather_v together_o the_o troop_n of_o thy_o brother_n martyr_n and_o thou_o with_o they_o joint_o beseech_v god_n to_o stay_v the_o invasion_n of_o the_o barbarous_a goth_n pro._n nyssen_n speak_v this_o in_o a_o panegyricall_a oration_n as_o a_o orator_n not_o as_o a_o divine_a in_o a_o popular_a sermon_n of_o commemoration_n not_o in_o doctrinal_a determination_n in_o like_a sort_n bellarmine_n object_n nazianzen_n in_o his_o oration_n call_v unto_o cyprian_a basil_n and_o athanasius_n with_o a_o tu_fw-la autem_fw-la è_fw-la supernis_fw-la nos_fw-la respicio_fw-la atha●as_n do_v thou_o favourable_o look_v upon_o we_o from_o a_o high_a whereas_o this_o be_v no_o direct_a invocation_n but_o rather_o a_o vote_n wish_v and_o desire_n that_o basil_n and_o athanasius_n may_v do_v so_o and_o so_o for_o it_o be_v not_o respicio_fw-la nos_fw-la but_o o_o si_fw-la or_o utinam_fw-la nos_fw-la respicias_fw-la and_o so_o he_o speak_v of_o basil_n and_o now_o basil_n be_v in_o the_o heaven_n offer_v as_o i_o think_v sacrifice_n for_o we_o and_o pray_v for_o the_o people_n he_o come_v with_o a_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d as_o i_o take_v it_o as_o i_o be_o persuade_v it_o be_v but_o his_o opinion_n and_o conjecture_v be_v indeed_o nothing_o but_o a_o rhetorical_a flourish_n the_o like_a answer_n may_v serve_v to_o that_o of_o hierome_n who_o conclude_v his_o funeral_n oration_n upon_o paula_n desire_v she_o in_o heaven_n to_o assist_v he_o with_o her_o prayer_n paulae_fw-la the_o speech_n h●e_v use_v be_v no_o more_o but_o a_o rhetorical_a apostrophe_n or_o conversion_n to_o she_o beside_o it_o be_v but_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d a_o wish_n and_o not_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d a_o direct_a prayer_n unto_o she_o in_o the_o like_a manner_n ●or_a proof_n of_o prayer_n to_o saint_n bellarmine_n allege_v two_o poet_n paulinus_n and_o prudentius_n now_o we_o answer_v he_o in_o his_o own_o word_n ad._n who_o when_o prudenti●s_n be_v allege_v against_o he_o in_o the_o point_n of_o purgatory_n he_o put_v it_o off_o say_v prudentius_n play_v the_o poet_n so_o say_v we_o that_o they_o speak_v it_o in_o a_o poetical_a vain_a as_o other_o in_o a_o strain_n of_o rhetoric_n now_o in_o poetry_n man_n take_v more_o liberty_n beside_o their_o word_n serve_v they_o not_o at_o will_n as_o they_o do_v in_o prose_n but_o they_o must_v often_o take_v such_o to_o make_v up_o their_o verse_n as_o be_v otherwise_o inconvenient_a to_o be_v use_v moreover_o the_o heat_n of_o their_o invention_n carry_v they_o further_o oftentimes_o then_o in_o a_o temperate_a speech_n they_o will_v be_v carry_v pa._n saint_n ambrose_n exhort_v widow_n to_o pray_v to_o the_o angel_n and_o martyr_n viluis_fw-la who_o he_o call_v beholder_n of_o our_o life_n and_o action_n pro._n saint_n ambrose_n be_v choose_v from_o a_o secular_a judge_n to_o be_v bishop_n of_o milan_n and_o be_v fain_o to_o be_v christen_v before_o he_o can_v be_v consecrate_v now_o this_o book_n de_fw-fr viduis_fw-la of_o widow_n be_v write_v about_o the_o begin_n of_o his_o christianity_n and_o divinity_n both_o ambrose_n and_o therefore_o it_o be_v not_o strange_a if_o in_o his_o beginning_n and_o novice_n ship_n he_o say_v some_o thing_n for_o which_o he_o afterwards_o correct_v himself_o of_o this_o sort_n be_v that_o which_o he_o have_v in_o the_o book_n allege_v which_o show_v he_o be_v a_o novice_n in_o divinity_n when_o he_o write_v that_o book_n de_fw-fr viduis_fw-la for_o there_o he_o doubt_v whether_o the_o martyr_n have_v any_o sin_n or_o n●_n and_o then_o say_v citato_fw-la that_o the_o sin_n they_o have_v they_o do_v themselves_o wash_v away_o with_o their_o own_o blood_n whereas_o the_o holy_a scripture_n give_v we_o no_o other_o l●ver_n for_o our_o sin_n than_o the_o blood_n of_o jesus_n christ_n who_o have_v love_v we_o and_o wash_v we_o from_o our_o sin_n in_o his_o own_o blood_n 1.5_o and_o again_o 7._o the_o saint_n have_v wash_v their_o robe_n in_o the_o blood_n of_o the_o lamb_n now_o the_o blood_n of_o martyr_n be_v not_o the_o blood_n of_o christ_n and_o therefore_o that_o speech_n be_v neither_o so_o safe_o nor_o proper_o set_v down_o beside_o the_o word_n rea●h_v not_o home_n it_o be_v only_o his_o opinion_n that_o the_o saint_n and_o angel_n be_v our_o patron_n videmur_fw-la citator_n we_o seem_v to_o have_v their_o patronage_n and_o yet_o it_o be_v but_o patrocinium_fw-la quoddam_fw-la a_o certain_a kind_n of_o guardian_n ship_n but_o what_o saint_n ambrose_n opinion_n be_v touch_v this_o point_n no_o man_n can_v better_o tell_v than_o himself_o who_o elsewhere_o say_v 5._o that_o to_o procure_v god_n favour_n we_o need_v no_o spokesman_n but_o a_o devout_a mind_n and_o again_o 3._o thou_o only_a o_o lord_n ought_v to_o be_v invocate_v and_o pray_v unto_o objection_n saint_n cyril_n of_o jerusalem_n say_v mystag_n that_o we_o make_v mention_n of_o those_o that_o sleep_n in_o the_o lord_n before_o we_o that_o by_o their_o intercession_n
it_o be_v a_o strain_n of_o rhetoric_n why_o not_o the_o other_o also_o sixtus_n senensis_n give_v a_o good_a rule_n for_o interpretation_n of_o the_o father_n speech_n special_o in_o this_o argument_n 152._o the_o say_n of_o preacher_n be_v not_o to_o be_v urge_v in_o that_o rigour_n of_o their_o word_n for_o after_o the_o manner_n of_o orator_n they_o use_v to_o speak_v many_o time_n hyperbolical_o and_o in_o excess_n and_o he_o instance_v in_o chrysostome_n as_o well_o he_o may_v for_o he_o be_v full_a of_o they_o even_o there_o where_o he_o speak_v of_o the_o sacrament_n he_o say_v jo●n_n that_o our_o tooth_n be_v fix_v in_o the_o flesh_n of_o christ_n that_o ma●h_n our_o tongue_n be_v die_v red_a with_o his_o blood_n and_o again_o math._n that_o it_o be_v not_o the_o minister_n but_o god_n that_o baptize_v thou_o and_o hold_v thy_o head_n now_o these_o and_o the_o like_a say_n must_v be_v favourable_o construe_v as_o be_v improper_a speech_n rhetorical_a strain_n purposely_o utter_v to_o move_v affection_n stir_v up_o devotion_n and_o bring_v the_o sacrament_n out_o of_o contempt_n that_o so_o the_o communicants_a eye_n may_v not_o be_v final_o fix_v on_o the_o outward_a element_n of_o bread_n and_o wine_n be_v in_o themselves_o but_o transitory_a and_o corruptible_a creature_n but_o to_o have_v their_o heart_n elevate_v and_o lift_v up_o by_o faith_n to_o behold_v the_o very_a body_n of_o christ_n which_o be_v represent_v in_o these_o mystery_n otherwise_o the_o father_n come_v down_o to_o a_o low_a key_n when_o they_o come_v to_o speak_v to_o the_o point_n yea_o or_o no_o and_o according_o saint_a chrysostome_n when_o once_o he_o be_v out_o of_o his_o rhetorical_a vein_n and_o speak_v positive_o and_o doctrinal_o say_v math._n when_o our_o lord_n give_v the_o sacrament_n he_o give_v wine_n and_o again_o savilij_fw-la do_v we_o not_o offer_v every_o day_n we_o offer_v indeed_o but_o by_o keep_v a_o memory_n of_o his_o death_n and_o he_o put_v in_o a_o kind_n of_o caution_n or_o correction_n lest_o any_o shall_v mistake_v he_o we_o offer_v say_v he_o the_o same_o sacrifice_n or_o rather_o the_o remembrance_n thereof_o and_o such_o a_o commemorative_n and_o eucharistical_a sacrifice_n we_o acknowledge_v object_n saint_n cyril_n of_o alexandria_n use_v the_o word_n corporal_o say_v 1._o that_o by_o the_o mystical_a benediction_n the_o son_n of_o god_n be_v unite_v to_o we_o corporal_o as_o man_n and_o spiritual_o as_o god_n answer_n hereby_o be_v mean_v a_o full_a perfect_a spiritual_a conjunction_n with_o the_o sanctify_a communicant_n exclude_v all_o manner_n of_o imagination_n or_o fantasy_n and_o not_o a_o gross_a and_o fleshly_a be_v of_o christ_n body_n in_o our_o body_n according_a to_o the_o appearance_n of_o the_o letter_n otherwise_o this_o inconvenience_n will_v follow_v that_o our_o body_n must_v be_v in_o like_a manner_n corporal_o in_o christ_n body_n for_o cyril_n as_o he_o say_v ch●ist_n be_v corporal_o in_o we_o so_o he_o say_v 13._o wear_v corporal_o in_o christ_n by_o corporal_o than_o he_o mean_v that_o near_o and_o indissoluble_a union_n in_o the_o same_o sense_n that_o the_o apostle_n use_v it_o say_v in_o he_o dwell_v all_o the_o fullness_n of_o the_o godhead_n bodily_a coll._n 2.9_o bodily_a that_o be_v indissoluble_o besides_o christ_n be_v likewise_o join_v corporal_o to_o we_o by_o the_o sacrament_n of_o baptism_n and_o yet_o therein_o there_o be_v no_o transubstantiation_n of_o image-worship_n saint_n hierome_n say_v 16._o we_o worship_v one_o image_n which_o be_v the_o image_n of_o the_o invisible_a and_o omnipotent_a god_n saint_n austin_n say_v 11._o no_o image_n of_o god_n ought_v to_o be_v worship_v but_o that_o which_o be_v the_o same_o thing_n that_o he_o be_v meaning_n christ_n jesus_n col._n 1.15_o hebr._n 1.3_o nor_o yet_o that_o for_o he_o but_o with_o he_o and_o as_o for_o the_o represent_v of_o god_n in_o the_o similitude_n of_o a_o man_n he_o resolve_v that_o it_o be_v utter_o unlawful_a 7._o to_o erect_v any_o such_o image_n to_o god_n in_o a_o christian_a church_n he_o condemn_v the_o use_n of_o image_n even_o when_o they_o be_v not_o adore_v for_o themselves_o but_o make_v instrument_n to_o worship_n god_n say_v 10._o thus_o have_v they_o deserve_v to_o err_v which_o seek_v christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n in_o paint_a image_n and_o not_o in_o write_a book_n the_o same_o austin_n write_v of_o the_o manner_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n direct_o sever_v the_o case_n of_o some_o man_n who_o be_v wont_a to_o kneel_v superstitious_o in_o church_n yard_n before_o the_o tomb_n of_o martyr_n and_o the_o paint_a history_n of_o their_o suffering_n these_o private_a man_n case_n he_o sever_v from_o the_o common_a cause_n and_o approve_a practice_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n say_v 34._o do_v not_o bring_v in_o the_o company_n of_o rude_a m●n_z which_o in_o the_o true_a religion_n itself_o be_v superstitious_a i_o know_v many_o that_o be_v worshipper_n of_o grave_n and_o picture_n now_o this_o i_o advise_v that_o you_o cease_v to_o speak_v evil_a of_o the_o catholic_a church_n by_o upbraid_v it_o with_o the_o manner_n of_o those_o man_n who_o she_o herself_o condemn_v and_o seek_v every_o day_n to_o correct_v as_o naughty_a child_n so_o that_o in_o saint_n austin_n time_n as_o be_v already_o no●ed_v psalm_n image_n and_o image-worship_n be_v not_o use_v by_o any_o general_a warrant_a practice_n if_o some_o misinform_v man_n use_v it_o this_o can_v not_o in_o saint_n austin_n opinion_n make_v it_o a_o church_n duty_n necessary_a and_o catholic_a or_o draw_v it_o to_o be_v a_o general_a custom_n bellarmine_n answer_v dico_fw-la that_o saint_n austin_n write_v this_o in_o the_o begin_n of_o his_o conversion_n to_o christianity_n and_o that_o upon_o better_a information_n he_o change_v his_o mind_n but_o he_o tell_v we_o not_o in_o what_o part_n of_o his_o retractation_n this_o be_v to_o be_v find_v divers_a other_o shift_n beside_o be_v use_v herein_o and_o some_o fly_n to_o the_o distinction_n of_o a_o idol_n and_o a_o image_n but_o that_o will_v not_o se●ve_v for_o the_o word_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d be_v often_o translate_v simulachrum_fw-la a_o likeness_n or_o similitude_n and_o as_o every_o idol_n be_v a_o image_n of_o some_o thing_n so_o every_o image_n worship_v turn_v idol_n there_o may_v be_v some_o odds_n in_o the_o language_n but_o none_o in_o the_o thing_n itself_o bellarmine_n mince_v 25._o the_o matter_n and_o will_v have_v the_o image_n worship_v not_o proper_o and_o because_o of_o itself_o but_o reductive_o inasmuch_o as_o it_o do_v express_v the_o sampler_n other_o ●_o hold_v that_o the_o image_n be_v to_o be_v worship_v in_o itself_o and_o with_o the_o s●m●_n worship_n that_o the_o person_n be_v which_o be_v represent_v so_o that_o the_o crucifix_n be_v to_o be_v reverence_v with_o the_o self_n same_o honour_n that_o christ_n jesus_n be_v and_o as_o for_o the_o vulgar_a people_n they_o go_v blunt_o to_o it_o with_o down●right_a adoration_n cassander_n say_v imagine_v it_o be_v more_o manifest_a than_o that_o it_o can_v be_v deny_v that_o the_o worship_n of_o image_n and_o idol_n have_v too_o much_o prevail_v and_o the_o superstitious_a humour_n of_o people_n have_v be_v so_o cockered●_n that_o nothing_o have_v be_v omit_v among_o we_o either_o of_o the_o high_a adoration_n and_o vanity_n of_o paynim_n in_o worship_v and_o adore_v image_n polydore_v also_o say_v 13._o people_n be_v grow_v to_o such_o madness_n that_o there_o be_v many_o rude_a and_o stupid_a person_n which_o adore_v image_n of_o wood_n stone_n marble_n and_o brass_n or_o paint_v in_o window_n not_o as_o sign_n but_o as_o though_o they_o have_v sense_n and_o they_o repose_v more_o trust_n in_o they_o than_o in_o christ_n or_o the_o saint_n to_o which_o they_o be_v dedicate_v ludovicus_n vives_n say_v 27._o saint_n be_v esteem_v and_o worship_v by_o many_o as_o be_v the_o god_n among_o the_o gentile_n objection_n the_o honour_n or_o dishonour_v do_v to_o the_o image_n redound_v to_o the_o person_n represent_v or_o p●ototype_n as_o appear_v by_o our_o be_v uncover_v &_o use_v reverence_n in_o the_o king_n chamber_n of_o presence_n and_o before_o his_o chair_n of_o estate_n when_o his_o person_n be_v absent_a in_o like_a sort_n the_o honour_n and_o worship_v due_a to_o the_o image_n redound_v to_o christ_n and_o his_o saint_n now_o if_o a_o image_n be_v capable_a of_o contempt_n and_o reproach_n it_o be_v also_o capable_a of_o honour_n and_o worship_n answer_n the_o rule_n the_o dishonour_n do_v to_o the_o image_n redound_v to_o the_o person_n be_v true_a special_o in_o civil_a affair_n when_o the_o party_n will_v be_v honour_v by_o the_o image_n and_o thus_o be_v theodosius_n grieve_v with_o they_o of_o antioch_n 19_o for_o cast_v down_o his_o
wife_n statue_n it_o may_v also_o redound_v to_o the_o p●rson_n by_o accident_n that_o be_v when_o a_o man_n do_v a_o thing_n with_o a_o purpose_n to_o dishonour_v he_o as_o julian_n do_v 20._o when_o he_o pull_v down_o the_o image_n of_o christ_n and_o set_v up_o his_o own_o beside_o these_o contrary_n be_v not_o paria_fw-la for_o it_o suffice_v to_o the_o dishonour_n of_o god_n that_o there_o be_v a_o evil_a affection_n or_o intention_n but_o a_o good_a intention_n be_v not_o sufficient_a to_o the_o honour_v of_o god_n except_o the_o mean_n as_o well_o as_o the_o meaning_n be_v prescribe_v of_o god_n last_o as_o learned_a bishop_n white_a say_v 228._o this_o similitude_n halt_v for_o the_o king_n chair_n of_o state_n and_o his_o image_n when_o they_o be_v honour_v or_o dishonour_v be_v conjoin_v with_o his_o person_n by_o civil_a ordinance_n and_o relation_n but_o the_o artificial_a image_n of_o christ_n and_o his_o cross_n be_v not_o conjoin_v with_o christ_n by_o divine_a ordination_n or_o by_o relation_n ground_v on_o christ_n word_n but_o by_o a_o imaginary_a act_n of_o the_o superstitious_a worshipper_n also_o civil_a and_o religious_a worship_n be_v of_o diverse_a beginning_n and_o form_n and_o every_o thing_n that_o be_v possible_a lawful_a and_o commendable_a in_o the_o one_o be_v not_o so_o in_o the_o other_o objection_n adoration_n be_v perform_v to_o image_n as_o be_v do_v outward_o relative_o and_o transitory_o unto_o the_o image_n inward_o affectuous_o absolute_o and_o final_o unto_o christ._n answer_n if_o you_o adore_v image_n outward_o relative_o and_o transitory_o than_o as_o the_o same_o bishop_n say_v 246._o you_o make_v image_n a_o partial_a object_n of_o adoration_n but_o god_n himself_o who_o say_v i_o will_v not_o give_v my_o glory_n to_o another_o to_o wit_n in_o whole_a or_o in_o part_n neither_o my_o praise_n to_o grave_a image_n isaiah_n 42.8_o have_v exclude_v image_n from_o copartnership_n with_o himself_o in_o adoration_n of_o prayer_n to_o saint_n concern_v prayer_n to_o saint_n saint_n hierome_n or_o whosoever_o quarti_fw-la else_o be_v the_o author_n of_o those_o commentary_n on_o the_o proverb_n say_v 2._o we_o ought_v to_o invocate_v that_o be_v by_o prayer_n to_o call_v into_o we_o none_o but_o god_n and_o in_o another_o place_n nepotiani_n whatsoever_o i_o shall_v utter_v seem_v dumb_a because_o he_o nepotian_n be_v defunct_a hear_v i_o not_o theodoret_n upon_o the_o 2._o and_o 3._o chapter_n to_o the_o colossian_n express_o say_v and_o that_o by_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o council_n of_o laodicea_n that_o angel_n be_v not_o to_o be_v pray_v unto_o and_o if_o not_o angel_n not_o martyr_n saint_n austi●e_n in_o his_o book_n which_o he_o write_v of_o true_a religion_n say_v 55._o the_o worship_v of_o man_n that_o be_v dead_a shall_v be_v no_o part_n of_o our_o religion_n papist_n invocate_v saint_n in_o the_o liturgy_n of_o their_o mass_n which_o the_o ancient_n do_v not_o saint_n austin_n say_v express_o that_o martyr_n be_v name_v at_o the_o communion_n table_n but_o not_o invocate_v his_o word_n be_v these_o 5._o at_o which_o sacrifice_n the_o martyr_n be_v name_v in_o their_o place_n and_o order_n as_o man_n of_o god_n which_o have_v overcome_v the_o world_n in_o the_o confession_n of_o he_o but_o yet_o notwithstanding_o they_o be_v not_o invocate_v by_o the_o priest_n which_o sacrifise_v answer_n this_o place_n be_v thus_o answer_v perron_n the_o priest_n do_v not_o invocate_v saint_n by_o direct_a prayer_n beside_o the_o sacrifice_n be_v direct_v to_o god_n the_o father_n alone_o and_o that_o may_v be_v the_o reason_n why_o the_o saint_n be_v not_o invocate_v reply_n saint_n austin_n exclude_v all_o invocation_n of_o saint_n both_o direct_a and_o indirect_a in_o the_o administration_n of_o the_o eucharist_n nei●her_o will_v th●se_a distinction_n help_v they_o for_o though_o the_o invocation_n of_o they_o be_v not_o a_o direct_a absolute_a and_o sou●raigne_a invocation_n yet_o if_o it_o be_v a_o indirect_a relative_a or_o subaltern_a invocation_n a_o invocation_n it_o be_v and_o such_o a_o one_o be_v the_o invocation_n at_o the_o altar_n in_o the_o mass_n for_o thus_o it_o be_v mi●iae_fw-la libera_n nos_fw-la domine_fw-la ab_fw-la omnibus_fw-la malis_fw-la etc._n etc._n interced●nte_fw-la pro_fw-la nobis_fw-la beatâ_fw-la virgine_fw-la etc._n etc._n beatis_fw-la apostolis_n etc._n etc._n cum_fw-la omnibus_fw-la sanctis_fw-la and_o so_o what_o shall_v become_v of_o saint_n augustine_n non_fw-la invocantur_fw-la who_o know_v none_o of_o these_o distinction_n of_o the_o ●_z which_o in_o that_o age_n and_o many_o age_n after_o be_v not_o hear_v of_o 38._o say_v our_o learned_a bishop_n of_o winchester_n neither_o can_v the_o cardinal_n allege_v any_o reason_n why_o if_o the_o saint_n may_v be_v pray_v unto_o they_o may_v not_o be_v so_o as_o well_o by_o the_o priest_n as_o by_o the_o people_n as_o well_o at_o m●sse_n as_o at_o matin_n as_o well_o in_o the_o body_n of_o the_o church_n as_o at_o the_o altar_n a●_n for_o th●ir_n new_a distinction_n of_o sacrificall_a and_o unsacrificall_a invocation_n and_o their_o conceit_n that_o the_o sacrifice_n be_v offer_v ●nto_n god_n the_o father_n alone_o it_o be_v say_v the_o same_o learned_a bishop_n ibid._n refute_v by_o the_o canon_n itself_o of_o the_o mass_n th●_n conclusion_n whereof_o ibid._n be_v placeat_fw-la tibi_fw-la sancta_fw-la t●i●i●as_fw-la obs●q●ium_fw-la servitut●s_fw-la meae_fw-la etc._n etc._n so_o that_o that_o the_o sacrifice_n be_v offer_v ●o_o the_o whole_a trinity_n beside_o there_o be_v divers_a coll●ct●_n more●_n direct_v unto_o christ_n himself_o and_o ●●l_o of_o they_o say_v dum_fw-la assistitur_fw-la altari_fw-la now_o in_o case_n that_o any_o upon_o consideration_n of_o their_o ow_v unworthiness_n and_o god_n dreadful_a majesty_n shall_v se●k●_n to_o go●_n b●_n mediation_n of_o other_o saint_n c●rysostom●_n of_o all_o the_o father_n be_v most_o plentiful_a in_o refute_v this_o course_n of_o int●●cession_n by_o other_o when_o thou_o have_v need_v to_o sue_v unto_o man_n say_v he_o ●02_n thou_o be_v force_v first_o to_o deal_v wit●_n door_n keeper_n an●_n po●ters_n and_o to_o entreat_v parasite_n and_o flatterer_n and_o to_o go_v a_o long_a way_n about_o but_o with_o god_n there_o be_v no_o such_o matter_n he_o be_v entreat_v without_o a●_n intercesson_n it_o suffice_v only_o that_o thou_o cry_v in_o thy_o heart_n and_o bring_v tear_n with_o thou_o and_o enter_v in_o straightway_o thou_o may_v draw_v he_o unto_o thou_o and_o for_o example_n hereof_o he_o set_v before_o we_o the_o woman_n of_o canaan_n she_o entreat_v not_o james_n say_v he_o 190._o she_o beseech_v not_o john_n neither_o do●h_n she_o come_v to_o pe●er_v but_o break_v through_o the_o whole_a company_n of_o they_o say_v i_o have_v no_o need_n of_o a_o mediator_n but_o take_v repentance_n with_o i_o for_o a_o spoakesman_n i_o come_v to_o the_o fountain_n itself_o for_o this_o cause_n ●id_v he_o descend_v for_o this_o cause_n do_v he_o take_v flesh_n that_o i_o may_v have_v the_o boldness_n to_o speak_v unto_o he_o i_o have_v no_o need_n of_o a_o mediator_n have_v thou_o mercy_n upon_o i_o and_o whereas_o some_o repose_v such_o confidence_n in_o the_o intercession_n of_o the_o saint_n that_o they_o look_v to_o receive_v great_a benefit_n by_o they_o than_o by_o their_o own_o p●ayers_n he_o bring_v in_o again_o the_o w●man_n of_o canaan_n and_o wish_n we_o to_o observe_v 417._o how_o when_o other_o entreat_v he_o put_v she_o back_o but_o when_o she_o herself_o cry_v out_o pr●ying_v for_o the_o gift_n he_o yield_v yea_o he_o say_v far_a that_o 36._o god_n then_o do_v most_o when_o we_o do_v not_o use_v the_o entreaty_n of_o other_o for_o as_o a_o kind_a friend_n than_o blame_v he_o we_o m●st_o as_o not_o dare_v to_o trust_v his_o love_n when_o we_o entreat_v other_o to_o pray_v unto_o he_o for_o we_o thus_o use_v we_o to_o do_v with_o those_o that_o se●ke_v to_o we_o then_o we_o gratify_v they_o most_o when_o they_o come_v unto_o we_o by_o themselves_o and_o not_o by_o other_o answer_n chrysostome_n speak_v thus_o chrysostomum_fw-la against_o such_o idle_a fellow_n as_o commit_v themselves_o whole_o ●o_o the_o patronage_n of_o their_o tutelar_a saint_n and_o themselves_o live_v in_o their_o sin_n or_o he_o utter_v such_o speech_n homily_n wise_a chrysost._n as_o in_o the_o pulpit_n not_o dogmatical_o as_o deliver_v his_o judgement_n reply_n as_o if_o a_o man_n may_v not_o deliver_v his_o judgement_n in_o the_o pulpit_n for_o albeit_o in_o figure_n and_o phrase_n and_o manner_n of_o handle_v there_o be_v s●me_a d●ff●rence_n between_o a_o preacher_n before_o the_o people_n and_o a_o r●ade●_n before_o the_o learned_a yet_o no_o learned_a go●ly_a man_n such_o as_o chrysostome_n be_v will_v so_o advise_o so_o vehement_o and_o often_o time_n as_o he_o do_v utter_v any_o thing_n in_o the_o
their_o reformation_n so_o that_o they_o be_v constrain_v to_o tolerate_v these_o and_o the_o like_a abuse_n insomuch_o that_o the_o same_o austin_n speak_v of_o they_o say_v januar._n approbare_fw-la non_fw-la possum_fw-la i_o can_v no_o way_n allow_v they_o and_o yet_o liberius_fw-la improbare_fw-la non_fw-la audeo_fw-la i_o dare_v not_o free_o reprove_v they_o and_o why_o lest_o thereby_o i_o either_o offend_v some_o good_a man_n or_o provoke_v some_o turbulent_a spirit_n and_o the_o same_o father_n speak_v of_o such_o as_o drink_v drink_v over_o the_o sepulcher_n of_o the_o dead_a withal_o he_o add_v 21._o it_o be_v one_o thing_n that_o we_o teach_v another_o that_o we_o tolerate_v it_o be_v one_o thing_n that_o which_o we_o be_v command_v to_o teach_v another_o thing_n we_o be_v command_v to_o correct_v and_o which_o we_o be_v constrain_v to_o bear_v withal_o until_o that_o it_o be_v amend_v neither_o indeed_o be_v it_o to_o be_v marvail_v if_o the_o learned_a among_o they_o and_o such_o as_o be_v late_o come_v from_o the_o philosopher_n school_n into_o christian_a college_n and_o a_o people_n new_o creep_v out_o of_o paganism_n i_o say_v it_o be_v not_o to_o be_v marvail_v if_o they_o retain_v something_o of_o their_o forme_a tenet_n and_o custom_n but_o these_o be_v no_o precedent_n for_o we_o who_o have_v now_o better_a learned_a christ_n jesus_n cau●ion_n for_o far_a caution_n we_o may_v make_v use_n of_o that_o rule_n which_o bellarmine_n lay_v down_o and_o it_o be_v this_o we_o must_v say_v ex._n he_o confer_v the_o father_n one_o with_o another_o and_o the_o same_o father_n oft_o time_n in_o diverse_a treatise_n with_o himself_o and_o by_o those_o thing_n that_o be_v clear_o set_v down_o in_o one_o place_n or_o one_o father_n expound_v those_o thing_n that_o seem_v more_o obscure_a and_o doubtful_a in_o another_o now_o we_o accept_v of_o this_o rule_n and_o thereby_o defeat_v diverse_a of_o our_o adversary_n allegation_n for_o example_n those_o word_n of_o saint_n ambrose_n 9_o be_v much_o press_v benedictione_n natura_fw-la mutatur_fw-la by_o benediction_n or_o consecration_n the_o nature_n of_o the_o element_n in_o the_o lord_n supper_n be_v change_v and_o yet_o saint_n cyrill_n interpret_v say_v as_o much_o of_o baptism_n namely_o that_o the_o water_n be_v change_v into_o a_o divine_a nature_n they_o will_v not_o hence_o infer_v a_o transubstantiation_n in_o baptism_n why_o will_v they_o then_o from_o the_o like_a word_n in_o saint_n ambrose_n infer_v a_o transubstantiation_n in_o the_o lord_n supper_n those_o word_n of_o gregory_n nyssen_n 536._o be_v much_o press_v namely_o panem_fw-la in_o corpus_fw-la christi_fw-la 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d bread_n to_o be_v change_v into_o christ_n body_n now_o let_v nyssen_n expound_v nyssen_n who_o in_o the_o word_n immediate_o go_v before_o say_v corpus_fw-la christi_fw-la ad_fw-la divinam_fw-la dignitatem_fw-la 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d that_o christ_n body_n be_v change_v or_o turn_v into_o a_o divine_a excellency_n and_o yet_o this_o be_v do_v without_o any_o transubstansiation_n at_o all_o in_o like_a sort_n that_o of_o theophylact_fw-mi be_v much_o urge_v domini_fw-la who_o say_v of_o the_o bread_n that_o it_o be_v trans-elementated_n into_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n he_o use_v the_o word_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d now_o theophylact_fw-mi may_v expound_v theophylact_fw-mi who_o in_o the_o very_a same_o place_n say_v 654._o nos_fw-la in_o christum_fw-la 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d that_o we_o also_o be_v trans-elementated_n into_o christ_n that_o a_o christian_n be_v in_o a_o manner_n trans-elementated_n into_o christ_n now_o they_o will_v not_o say_v that_o we_o be_v transubstantiate_v into_o christ_n therefore_o neither_o do_v theophylact_v by_o the_o word_n trans-elementation_a use_v of_o the_o bread_n and_o wine_n understand_v any_o substantial_a but_o only_o a_o sacramental_a change_n the_o like_a be_v show_v in_o the_o testimony_n object_v out_o of_o hilary_n in_o the_o four_o age_n and_o cyrill_n of_o alexandria_n in_o the_o five_o answer_v by_o themselves_o caution_n we_o be_v to_o make_v a_o dfference_n of_o the_o father_n age_n and_o writing_n as_o also_o of_o their_o gift_n saint_n austin_n write_v more_o sound_o than_o origen_n though_o origen_n be_v his_o ancient_n for_o origen_n turn_v almost_o all_o into_o allegory_n yet_o as_o with_o wine_n so_o in_o write_n usual_o the_o elder_a the_o better_o and_o the_o water_n near_o the_o springhead_n run_v clear_a and_o sweet_a so_o it_o be_v with_o the_o father_n that_o write_v during_o the_o first_o five_o hundred_o year_n next_o after_o christ_n other_o that_o write_v after_o the_o first_o six_o hundred_o year_n such_o as_o damascen_n anselm_n and_o the_o like_a they_o be_v post-nati_a to_o primitive_a antiquity_n and_o out_o of_o the_o verge_n of_o the_o church_n purity_n as_o also_o some_o of_o they_o partial_a for_o so_o be_v damascen_n a_o party_n in_o that_o image_n quarrel_n in_o the_o eastern_a church_n and_o therefore_o in_o that_o case_n his_o testimony_n be_v to_o be_v bar_v beside_o for_o the_o answer_n of_o allegation_n out_o of_o the_o father_n we_o must_v sever_v the_o bastard_n treatise_n from_o the_o true_a and_o undoubted_a write_n of_o the_o father_n for_o example_n dionysius_n hierarchy_n be_v a_o counterfeit_n clement_n constitution_n be_v suspect_v and_o cyprian_a de_fw-fr coena_fw-la domini_fw-la be_v not_o 12._o cyprian_n as_o be_v already_o show_v in_o the_o three_o centurie_n object_n if_o these_o be_v counterfeit_n how_o be_v it_o that_o yourselves_o produce_v divers_a testimony_n out_o of_o they_o as_o also_o out_o of_o the_o commentary_n of_o saint_n hierome_n and_o saint_n ambrose_n upon_o saint_n paul_n epistle_n which_o yet_o yourselves_o do_v not_o hold_v they_o to_o be_v saint_n hieromes_n and_o saint_n ambrose_n ambrosian_a answer_n it_o be_v not_o to_o be_v marvel_v if_o some_o of_o our_o learned_a protestant_n admit_v the_o book_n be_v write_v by_o they_o who_o name_n they_o do_v bear_v do_v thence_o produce_v testimony_n against_o you_o for_o it_o be_v a_o rule_n in_o law_n testibu●_n testem_fw-la quem_fw-la quis_fw-la inducit_fw-la pro_fw-la se_fw-la tenetur_fw-la recipere_fw-la contre_fw-fr se_fw-la you_o have_v produce_v they_o for_o your_o own_o benefit_n and_o therefore_o in_o reason_n you_o can_v disallow_v of_o they_o now_o though_o it_o be_v to_o your_o great_a hindrance_n you_o first_o produce_v these_o witness_n and_o now_o that_o they_o be_v in_o the_o face_n of_o the_o court_n you_o must_v give_v we_o leave_v to_o examine_v they_o upon_o cross_a interrogatory_n to_o close_v up_o this_o point_n the_o father_n be_v more_o to_o be_v credit_v when_o they_o conclude_v a_o thing_n de_fw-fr fide_fw-la dogmatic_a 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d didactic_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d doctrinal_o positive_o purposely_o by_o way_n of_o set_v forth_o a_o matter_n of_o faith_n than_o when_o they_o write_v agonistic_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 10._o that_o be_v to_o say_v by_o way_n of_o contention_n and_o disputation_n or_o obiter_fw-la touch_v a_o point_n only_o upon_o the_o by_o and_o as_o it_o may_v serve_v and_o suit_n with_o the_o point_n they_o have_v in_o hand_n without_o far_a respect_n thereunto_o they_o be_v more_o to_o be_v credit_v when_o they_o speak_v categoric_a 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d assertiuè_fw-la with_o asseveration_n than_o speak_v only_a historic_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d and_o ex_fw-la opinion_n aliorum_fw-la relate_v only_o the_o opinion_n of_o other_o or_o what_o be_v do_v and_o not_o deliver_v their_o own_o judgement_n they_o be_v more_o to_o be_v esteem_v wh●n_o they_o speak_v as_o divine_n in_o a_o profess_a discourse_n than_o when_o they_o speak_v as_o orator_n poet_n panegyrift_n and_o in_o a_o popular_a 42._o discourse_n in_o a_o word_n we_o must_v observe_v what_o they_o write_v out_o of_o their_o private_a opinion_n and_o what_o they_o deliver_v as_o the_o judgement_n of_o the_o church_n when_o any_o of_o they_o go_v alone_o it_o be_v not_o so_o safe_a follow_v they_o but_o where_o we_o have_v their_o unanimous_a and_o joint_a consent_n in_o any_o material_a point_n we_o may_v more_o secure_o rely_v upon_o they_o and_o this_o be_v one_o of_o king_n james_n his_o direction_n for_o student_n in_o divinity_n feat_o and_o i_o find_v the_o same_o rule_n in_o vincentius_n lirinensis_n to_o wit_n 39_o that_o we_o may_v rely_v upon_o that_o not_o which_o one_o or_o two_o of_o the_o father_n but_o either_o all_o or_o most_o of_o they_o have_v teach_v and_o that_o manifest_o frequent_o and_o constant_o pa._n although_o in_o some_o thing_n the_o father_n make_v for_o you_o yet_o in_o the_o point_n of_o merit_n prayer_n for_o the_o dead_a and_o prayer_n to_o saint_n they_o be_v against_o you_o item_n they_o use_v the_o word_n merit_n and_o hold_v as_o we_o do_v pro._n the_o
image-worship_n yet_o in_o some_o other_o thing_n he_o be_v orthodox_n and_o in_o those_o we_o comply_v with_o he_o now_o also_o be_v hold_v a_o famous_a council_n at_o constantinople_n in_o the_o east_n and_o another_o at_o frankford_n in_o the_o west_n both_o of_o they_o oppose_v the_o second_o nicen_n synod_n now_o also_o live_v adelbert_n of_o france_n samson_n of_o scotland_n and_o claudius_n clemens_n of_o the_o same_o nation_n bishop_n of_o auxer●e_n in_o france_n 17._o th●se_o with_o other_o oppose_v boniface_n the_o pope_n factor_n while_o he_o seek_v to_o establish_v papal_a supremacy_n adoration_n of_o relic_n and_o image_n pargatorie_n prayer_n for_o ●he_n dead_a and_o to_o impose_v single_a life_n on_o the_o clergy_n and_o for_o ●his_v they_o be_v persecute_v under_o pope_n zacharie_n with_o bond_n and_o imprisonment_n aventin●_n say_v 218._o ●ha●_n albertus_n gallus_n and_o other_o bishop_n and_o priest_n of_o his_o sect_n so_o call_v he_o the_o way_n after_o which_o they_o worship●●od_v do_v mighty_o withstand_v this_o boniface_n or_o winifrid_n a_o eng●i●●●an_n bishop_n of_o me●tz_n towards_o the_o la●er_a end_n of_o this_o age_n there_o live_v though_o they_o flourish_v in_o the_o nine_o age_n 33._o claudius_n clemens_n scotus_n as_o also_o joannes_n mailrosius_n scotus_n call_v madrosius_fw-la haply_o for_o that_o he_o live_v in_o the_o monastery_n of_o mailros_n plant_v by_o bishop_n aidan_n and_o his_o follower_n in_o northumberland_n where_o also_o saint_n cuthbert_n have_v his_o education_n pa._n i_o claim_v saint_n bede_n for_o one_o of_o we_o pro._n you_o will_v lose_v your_o claim_n for_o though_o he_o be_v taint_v with_o superstition_n and_o slip_v into_o the_o corruption_n of_o the_o time_n wherein_o he_o live_v believe_v and_o report_v divers_a fabulous_a miracle_n and_o incredible_a story_n as_o some_o of_o your_o own_o man_n have_v 6._o censure_v he_o neither_o do_v we_o defend_v all_o he_o write_v yet_o in_o divers_a main_a ground_n of_o religion_n he_o be_v a_o adversary_n to_o your_o trent_n faith_n bede_n be_v a_o priest_n he_o live_v in_o the_o monastery_n of_o saint_n peter_n and_o saint_n paul_n at_o weere-mouth_n near_o durham_n a_o great_a clerk_n and_o writer_n of_o the_o english_a story_n alcwin_n or_o alwin_n be_v a_o yorkshire_n man_n as_o appear_v by_o his_o name_n alwin_n which_o in_o these_o part_n continue_v to_o this_o day_n he_o be_v england_n keeper_n of_o the_o library_n at_o york_n erect_v by_o archbishop_n egber●_n he_o be_v also_o schoolmaster_n to_o rabanus_n and_o in_o great_a ibid._n favour_n with_o his_o pupil_n carolus_n magnus_n who_o he_o persuade_v to_o found_v the_o university_n of_o paris_n he_o write_v three_o book_n of_o the_o trinity_n and_o dedicate_v they_o to_o charles_n the_o papist_n charge_v 3._o calvin_n to_o have_v make_v these_o book_n and_o to_o have_v set_v they_o forth_o in_o alcuinus_fw-la name_n alcuin_n and_o calvin_n be_v all_o one_o name_n by_o change_v the_o letter_n but_o this_o be_v untrue_a 50._o since_o both_o the_o note_n of_o the_o beginning_n and_o end_v of_o this_o book_n be_v to_o be_v see_v in_o a_o ancient_a manuscript_n in_o lincoln_n college_n and_o the_o very_a copy_n itself_o write_v as_o it_o may_v be_v conjecture_v above_o five_o hundred_o year_n ago_o be_v to_o be_v see_v in_o the_o prince_n library_n at_o saint_n james._n beside_o that_o myself_o have_v see_v 1525._o alcwin_n book_n of_o the_o trinity_n print_v in_o the_o year_n 1525._o whereas_o calvin_n by_o chronolog_n bellarmine_n account_n show_v not_o himself_o until_o the_o year_n 1538._o of_o the_o scripture_n sufficiency_n and_o canon_n damascen_n say_v 1._o whatsoever_o be_v deliver_v unto_o we_o in_o the_o law_n and_o the_o prophet_n by_o the_o apostle_n and_o evangelist_n that_o we_o receive_v acknowledge_v and_o reverence_v and_o besides_o these_o we_o require_v nothing_o else_o the_o same_o damascen_n number_n all_o those_o book_n and_o those_o only_a as_o canonical_a that_o we_o do_v and_o add_v that_o 18._o the_o book_n of_o wisdom_n and_o jesus_n the_o son_n of_o syrach_n be_v good_a book_n and_o contain_v good_a lesson_n but_o that_o they_o be_v not_o number_v in_o this_o account_n neither_o be_v lay_v up_o in_o the_o ark_n and_o our_o alcuinus_fw-la abbot_n of_o saint_n martin_n at_o tours_n in_o france_n write_v against_o elipantus_fw-la bishop_n of_o toledo_n tell_v he_o that_o he_o urge_v authority_n out_o of_o the_o book_n of_o jesus_n the_o son_n of_o syrach_n but_o say_v he_o 1617._o saint_n hierome_n and_o isidore_n do_v testify_v that_o without_o question_n it_o be_v to_o be_v repute_v among_o the_o apocryphal_a and_o doubtful_a book_n of_o communion_n under_o both_o kind_n and_o the_o number_n of_o sacrament_n charles_n the_o great_a say_v 14._o the_o mystery_n of_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n be_v daily_o receive_v by_o the_o faithful_a in_o the_o sacrament_n of_o his_o ●lesh_n and_o blood_n in_o ●anis_fw-la ac_fw-la vini_fw-la figurâ_fw-la in_o the_o figure_n o●_n bread_n and_o wine_n and_o that_o ●he_v sacrament_n be_v in_o it_o own_o nature_n br●ad_v and_o wine_n but_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n by_o mystical_a and_o sacramental_a relation_n he_o show_v in_o the_o same_o term_n as_o isidore_n do_v before_o he_o and_o rabanus_n after_o he_o because_o bread_n say_v ibid._n bede_n confirm_v the_o b●dy_n and_o wine_n do_v work_v blood_n in_o the_o flesh_n therefore_o the_o one_o be_v mystical_o refer_v to_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n the_o other_o to_o his_o blood_n but_o to_o leave_v particular_a man_n we_o have_v the_o suffrage_n of_o a_o whole_a council_n hold_v at_o constantinople_n in_o the_o year_n 754_o wherein_o it_o be_v maintain_v that_o 〈◊〉_d christ_n choose_v no_o other_o shape_n or_o type_n under_o heaven_n to_o represent_v his_o incarnation_n by_o but_o the_o sacrament_n 〈◊〉_d which_o he_o deliver_v to_o his_o minister_n for_o a_o type_n and_o a_o most_o effectual_a commemoration_n thereof_o 〈◊〉_d command_v the_o substance_n of_o bread_n to_o be_v offer_v and_o this_o bread_n they_o affirm_v to_o be_v 〈◊〉_d a_o true_a image_n of_o his_o natural_a flesh_n and_o these_o assertion_n of_o they_o they_o be_v to_o be_v 1012._o find_v in_o the_o three_o tome_n of_o the_o six_o action_n of_o the_o second_o council_n of_o nice_a of_o image_n and_o prayer_n to_o saint_n concern_v image_n venerable_a bede_n as_o we_o find_v he_o cite_v by_o gerson_n praecepto_fw-la the_o chancellor_n of_o paris_n say_v that_o image_n be_v not_o simple_o forbid_v to_o be_v make_v but_o they_o be_v utter_o forbid_v to_o be_v make_v to_o this_o end_n to_o be_v worship_v and_o adore_v charles_n the_o great_a sanct._n as_o cassander_n say_v have_v pithy_o and_o witty_o state_v this_o question_n of_o image_n that_o it_o be_v no_o prejudice_n to_o want_v t●em_n nor_o privilege_n to_o have_v they_o that_o such_o as_o utter_o reject_v they_o may_v be_v tax_v with_o fickleness_n and_o they_o that_o worship_v they_o brand_v with_o folly_n in_o this_o age_n there_o arise_v great_a contention_n in_o the_o church_n touch_v the_o matter_n of_o image_n the_o greek_a emperor_n leo_n isaurus_n constantine_n nic●phorus_n stauratius_n leo_fw-la armenus_n michael_n balbus_n theophilus_n and_o other_o their_o successor_n oppose_v they_o in_o the_o east_n and_o on_o the_o other_o side_n gregory_n the_o second_o and_o three_o paul_n the_o first_o stephen_n the_o four_o adrian_z the_o first_o and_o other_o pope_n of_o rome_n as_o stiff_o uphold_v they_o in_o the_o west_n in_o a_o council_n of_o 338_o bishop_n 2●●_n hold_v at_o constantinople_n anno_fw-la 754_o they_o be_v solemn_o condemn_v for_o they_o banish_v all_o other_o image_n and_o determine_v that_o there_o be_v one_o only_a image_n appoint_v by_o christ_n to_o wit_n the_o bless_a bread_n and_o wine_n in_o the_o eucharist_n which_o represent_v to_o we_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n there_o be_v decree_v under_o constantine_n nickname_v c●pronymus_n 377._o that_o none_o shall_v private_o in_o house_n or_o public_o in_o church_n procure_v keep_v or_o worship_v any_o image_n u●on_n pain_n of_o deposition_n zonara_n say_v 155●_n that_o in_o the_o hear_n of_o all_o the_o people_n they_o open_o forbid_v the_o worship_n of_o image_n call_v all_o such_o as_o adore_a th●m_n idolater_n and_o speak_v of_o the_o emperor_n leo_n armenus_n he_o say_v 105._o he_o be_v mighty_o bend_v against_o they_o insomuch_o as_o he_o decree_v utter_o to_o abandon_v they_o thus_o do_v those_o ezekiah_n of_o greece_n be_v strong_o oppose_v by_o the_o papal_a fo●ces_n now_o so_o it_o be_v afterward_o in_o another_o co●n●el_n of_o 350_o bishop_n condil_n hold_v at_o nice_a in_o the_o year_n 787._o image_n be_v set_v on_o foot_n again_o and_o this_o council_n be_v cal●ed_v and_o sway_v under_o that_o doctress_n irene_n the_o empress_n 747._o
with_o haymo_n as_o indeed_o his_o commentary_n on_o saint_n paul_n epistle_n be_v in_o a_o manner_n all_o take_v out_o of_o haymo_n as_o doctor_n rivet_n have_v 27._o observe_v it_o be_v the_o report_n of_o our_o ancestor_n say_v 158●_n walafridus_n strabo_n that_o in_o the_o primitive_a time_n they_o be_v wont_n according_a to_o christ_n institution_n to_o communicate_v and_o partake_v of_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o our_o lord_n even_o as_o many_o as_o be_v prepare_v and_o think_v fit_a 1583._o regino_n describe_v the_o manner_n of_o pope_n adrian's_n deliver_v the_o communion_n to_o king_n lotharius_n and_o his_o follower_n in_o both_o kind_n the_o king_n say_v he_o take_v the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o our_o lord_n at_o the_o hand_n of_o the_o pope_n and_o so_o do_v the_o king_n fallower_n paschasius_fw-la say_v 1●75_n these_o be_v the_o sacrament●_n of_o christ_n in_o the_o church_n baptism_n and_o chrism_n and_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n and_o dunelm_n rabanus_n have_v the_o self_n same_o word_n now_o with_o baptism_n they_o join_v chrism_n because_o they_o use_v to_o anoint_v such_o as_o be_v baptize_v for_o otherwise_o 23._o rabanus_n speak_v precise_o of_o two_o say_v what_o do_v these_o two_o sacrament_n effect_v and_o than_o he_o answer_v that_o by_o the_o one_o we_o be_v bear_v anew_o in_o christ_n and_o by_o the_o other_o christ_n abide_v in_o we_o of_o the_o eucharist_n rabanus_n say_v 31._o bread_n because_o it_o strengthen_v the_o body_n be_v therefore_o call_v the_o body_n and_o wine_n because_o it_o make_v blood_n be_v therefore_o refer_v to_o christ_n blood_n haymo_n palm_n say_v the_o same_o with_o rabanus_n rabanus_n farther_o say_v 3._o that_o the_o sacrament_n in_o one_o thing_n and_o the_o power_n thereof_o another_o the_o sacrament_n be_v turn_v into_o the_o nourishment_n of_o the_o body_n by_o the_o virtue_n of_o the_o sacrament_n we_o attain_v eternal_a life_n he_o say_v the_o sacrament_n which_o be_v the_o bread_n be_v turn_v into_o our_o bodily_a nourishment_n n●w_o species_n show_n and_o accident_n can_v not_o nourish_v but_o these_o latter_a word_n of_o rabanus_n westmon_n be_v raze_v ●ut_v whereas_o the_o monk_n of_o malmesbury_n witness_n that_o rabanus_n write_v according_o as_o be_v allege_v and_o this_o razure_n be_v observe_v by_o the_o publisher_n of_o matthew_n of_o westminster_n history_n haymo_n call_v the_o eucharist_n a_o 1._o memorial_n of_o that_o gift_n or_o legacy_n which_o christ_n dimise_v unto_o we_o at_o his_o death_n rabanus_n say_v 32._o that_o christ_n at_o first_o institute_v the_o sacrament_n of_o his_o body_n and_o blood_n with_o blessing_n and_o thanksgiving_n and_o deliver_v it_o to_o his_o apostle_n and_o they_o to_o their_o successor_n to_o do_v according_o and_o that_o now_o the_o whole_a church_n throughout_o the_o world_n observe_v this_o manner_n christianus_n druthmarus_n report_v our_o saviour_n act_n at_o his_o last_o supper_n say_v 32._o christ_n change_v the_o bread_n into_o his_o body_n and_o the_o wine_n into_o his_o blood_n spiritual_o he_o speak_v not_o of_o any_o change_n of_o substance_n walafridus_n strabo_n say_v 32._o that_o ch●ist_v deliver_v to_o his_o disciple_n the_o sacrament_n of_o his_o body_n and_o blood_n in_o panis_fw-la &_o vini_fw-la substantiâ_fw-la in_o the_o substance_n ●f_a bread_n and_o wine_n when_o carolus_n calvus_n the_o emperor_n desire_v to_o compose_v some_o difference_n about_o the_o sacrament_n then_o on_o ●oot_n he_o require_v bertram_n a_o learned_a man_n of_o that_o age_n t●_n deliver_v h●s_a judgement_n in_o that_o point_n 18●_n whether_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n which_o in_o the_o church_n be_v receive_v by_o the_o mouth_n o●_n t●●_n faithful_a be_v celebrate_v in_o a_o mystery_n or_o in_o the_o truth_n an●_n whether_o it_o be_v the_o same_o body_n which_o be_v bear_v of_o mary_n whereunto_o h●_n return_v this_o answer_n 183._o that_o the_o bread_n and_o the_o wine_n a●e_v t●●_n body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n figurative_o that_o 〈…〉_z this_o body_n be_v t●e_v pledge_v and_o the_o ●igure_n the_o other_o the_o very_a natural_a body_n 205_o that_o for_o the_o substance_n of_o the_o creature_n that_o which_o they_o be_v before_o consecration_n the_o same_o be_v they_o also_o afterward_o ●●●_o that_o they_o be_v call_v the_o lord_n body_n and_o blood_n because_o they_o take_v the_o name_n of_o that_o thing_n of_o which_o th●y_n be_v a_o sacrament_n 222._o that_o there_o be_v a_o great_a difference_n betwixt_o the_o mystery_n of_o the_o blood_n and_o body_n of_o christ_n which_o be_v take_v now_o by_o the_o faithful_a in_o the_o church_n and_o that_o which_o be_v bear_v of_o the_o virgin_n mary_n all_o which_o he_o prove_v at_o large_a by_o scripture_n and_o father_n your_o wisdom_n most_o excellent_a prince_n may_v perceive_v say_v he_o 228._o that_o i_o have_v prove_v by_o the_o testimony_n of_o holy_a scripture_n and_o father_n that_o the_o bread_n which_o be_v call_v christ_n body_n and_o the_o cup_n that_o be_v call_v his_o blood_n be_v a_o figure_n because_o it_o be_v a_o mystery_n pa._n i_o except_v against_o bertram_n his_o book_n be_v forbid_v to_o be_v read_v but_o by_o such_o as_o be_v 228._o licence_v or_o purpose_n to_o con●ute_v he_o pro._n bertram_z 228._o write_v of_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o chr●st_n as_o trithemius_n say_v and_o by_o your_o belgic_a or_o l●w_a country_n index_n bertram_n be_v style_v 228._o catholic_a now_o this_o index_n be_v publish_v by_o the_o king_n of_o spain_n commandment_n &_o the_o duke_n of_o alva_n and_o first_o print_v at_o antwerp_n in_o the_o year_n 1571_o and_o often_o since_o reprint_v now_o so_o it_o be_v howsoever_o he_o be_v account_v a_o catholic_a priest_n and_o much_o commend_v by_o trithemius_n yet_o be_v this_o catholic_n write_n forbid_v to_o be_v read_v as_o appear_v by_o several_a indices_fw-la the_o one_o set_v forth_o by_o the_o 228._o deputy_n of_o the_o trent_n council_n and_o another_o print_v at_o part_n 228._o under_o clement_n the_o eight_o now_o these_o inquisitor_n deal_v too_o rough_o and_o therefore_o the_o divine_n of_o douai_n perceive_v that_o the_o forbid_v of_o the_o book_n keep_v not_o man_n from_o read_v it_o but_o rather_o occasion_v they_o to_o seek_v after_o it_o think_v i●_n better_a policy_n that_o bertram_n shall_v be_v suffer_v to_o go_v abroad_o but_o with_o his_o keeper_n to_o wit_n some_o popish_a gloss_n to_o wait_v on_o he_o see_v therefore_o ibidem_fw-la say_v they_o we_o bear_v with_o many_o error_n in_o other_o old_a catholic_a writer_n and_o extenuate_v they_o excuse_v they_o by_o invent_v some_o device_n oftentimes_o deny_v they_o and_o ●aine_o some_o commodious_a sense_n for_o they_o when_o they_o be_v object_v in_o disputation_n with_o our_o adversary_n we_o do_v not_o see_v why_o bertram_n may_v not_o deserve_v the_o same_o equity_n and_o diligent_a revisall_n les●_n the_o heretic_n cry_v out_o that_o we_o burn_v and_o forbid_v such_o antiquity_n as_o make_v for_o they_o and_o according_o they_o have_v deal_v wi●h_v bertram_z for_o by_o their_o recognition_n ●7_n we_o must_v read_v invisibiliter_fw-la in_o stead_n of_o visibiliter_fw-la and_o these_o word_n the_o substance_n of_o the_o creature_n must_v be_v expound_v to_o signify_v outward_a show_n or_o accident_n but_o this_o will_v not_o serve_v the_o turn_n for_o bertram_n speak_v of_o the_o consecrated_a b●ead_n and_o wine_n say_v that_o for_o the_o substance_n of_o the_o creature_n they_o remain_v the_o same_o after_o consecration_n that_o they_o be_v before_o now_o if_o they_o do_v so_o then_o be_v not_o the_o substance_n of_o b●ead_n and_o wine_n change_v into_o the_o substance_n of_o the_o flesh_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n as_o the_o trent_n council_n will_v have_v it_o 13._o nor_o will_v it_o serve_v to_o say_v that_o by_o the_o substance_n of_o the_o creature_n be_v mean_v the_o outward_a accident_n as_o the_o whiteness_n of_o the_o bread_n the_o colour_n of_o the_o wine_n or_o the_o like_a for_o bertram_n speak_v proper_o that_o the_o consecrate_a bread_n and_o wine_n remain_v the_o same_o in_o substance_n and_o it_o be_v a_o improper_a speech_n to_o attribute_v the_o word_n substance_n to_o accident_n as_o to_o say_v the_o substance_n of_o the_o colour_n or_o redness_n of_o the_o wine_n or_o the_o like_a pa._n master_n brere_o suspect_v 7._o that_o this_o book_n be_v late_o set_v forth_o by_o o●colampadius_n under_o bertram_n name_n pro._n this_o suspicion_n be_v clear_v by_o the_o ancient_a manuscript_n copy_n of_o bertram_n extant_a before_o occolampadius_n be_v bear_v one_o whereof_o that_o great_a scholar_n causabon_n see_v in_o the_o library_n of_o master_n james_n gilot_n a_o burgess_n of_o paris_n as_o he_o 18._o witness_v to_o the_o reverend_n and_o learned_a primate_n doctor_n vsher._n and_o yet_o beside_o these_o manuscript_n bertram_n
teach_v the_o same_o doctrine_n in_o other_o book_n also_o to_o wit_n de_fw-fr nativitate_fw-la christi_fw-la and_o de_fw-fr animâ_fw-la which_o be_v to_o be_v see_v in_o the_o library_n of_o the_o cathedral_n church_n of_o sarisburie_n and_o bennet_n college_n in_o cambridge_n as_o the_o same_o 11._o bishop_n usher_n observe_v pa._n be_v bertram_n a_o learned_a man_n and_o of_o a_o good_a li●e_z pro._n trithemius_n the_o abbot_n give_v he_o a_o large_a be●●ram_fw-la commendation_n for_o his_o excellent_a learning_n in_o scripture_n his_o godly_a life_n his_o worthy_a book_n and_o by_o name_n this_o of_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ._n clodius_n de_fw-fr sancte_n 1575._o ●aith_o he_o be_v put_v in_o the_o catalogue_n of_o ecclesiastical_a writer_n for_o one_o catholic_a in_o life_n and_o doctrine_n and_o your_o brere_o 7._o say_v that_o ancient_a catholic_a writer_n doubt_v not_o to_o honour_v bertram_z for_o a_o holy_a martyr_n of_o their_o church_n now_o be_v we_o come_v to_o our_o famous_a countryman_n scotus_n much_o what_o of_o bertram_n stand_v and_o both_o of_o they_o in_o favour_n with_o charles_n unto_o who_o as_o bertram_n dedicate_v his_o treatise_n of_o the_o sacrament_n so_o also_o joannes_n scotus_n write_v of_o the_o same_o argument_n and_o to_o the_o same_o effect_n that_o bertram_n have_v do_v bellarmine_n say_v secundus_fw-la that_o scotus_n be_v the_o first_o who_o in_o the_o latin_a church_n write_v doubt●fully_o of_o the_o real_a presence_n it_o be_v indeed_o their_o fault_n that_o we_o have_v not_o his_o book_n yet_o may_v we_o presume_v that_o he_o write_v positive_o neither_o do_v we_o any_o where_o find_v that_o his_o book_n of_o the_o sacrament_n be_v condemn_v before_o the_o day_n of_o lanfrancke_n 54._o who_o be_v the_o first_o that_o leaven_v the_o church_n of_o england_n with_o this_o corrupt_a doctrine_n of_o the_o carnal_a presence_n so_o that_o all_o this_o while_n to_o wit_n from_o the_o year_n 876_o to_o 1050_o he_o pass_v for_o a_o good_a catholic_a pa._n be_v scotus_n a_o man_n of_o that_o note_n pro._n he_o be_v as_o possevine_n say_v 11._o scholar_n to_o bede_n fellow-pupill_n with_o alcuinus_fw-la and_o account_v one_o of_o the_o founder_n of_o the_o university_n of_o paris_n and_o in_o the_o end_n die_v like_o a_o martyr_n for_o after_o that_o he_o come_v into_o england_n and_o be_v public_a reader_n in_o oxford_n by_o the_o favour_n of_o king_n alfred_n he_o retire_v himself_o into_o malmsbury_n abbey_n and_o be_v there_o by_o his_o own_o scholar_n stab_v to_o death_n with_o pen-knive_n and_o this_o be_v do_v say_v bale_n 24._o and_o other_o prae●a●_n fortassis_fw-la non_fw-la sine_fw-la monachorum_fw-la impulse_n haply_o not_o without_o the_o monk_n procurement_n be_v murder_v by_o his_o scholar_n while_o he_o oppose_v the_o carnal_a presence_n which_o then_o some_o private_a person_n begin_v to_o set_v on_o foot_n by_o his_o birth_n he_o be_v one_o 9_o of_o the_o scottish_a or_o irish_a nation_n and_o be_v sometime_o call_v erigena_n sometime_o scotigena_n he_o be_v surname_v scotus_n the_o wise_a and_o for_o his_o extraordinary_a learning_n in_o great_a account_n with_o our_o king_n alfred_n and_o familiar_o entertain_v by_o charles_n the_o great_a to_o who_o he_o write_v divers_a 22._o letter_n in_o a_o word_n there_o be_v a_o old_a homely_a 45._o epitaph_n which_o speak_v what_o this_o scotus_n be_v clauditur_fw-la hoc_fw-la tumulo_fw-la sanctus_n sophista_fw-la joannes_n qui_fw-la ditatus_fw-la erat_fw-la jàm_fw-la vivens_fw-la dogmate_fw-it miro_fw-la martyrio_fw-la tandem_fw-la christi_fw-la conscendere_fw-la regnum_fw-la quo●_n meruit_fw-la sancti_fw-la regnant_a per_fw-la saecula_fw-la cuncti_fw-la under_o this_o stone_n lie_v sophister_n john_n who_o live_v have_v store_n of_o singular_a lore_n at_o length_n he_o do_v merit_n heaven_n to_o inherit_v a_o martyr_n blessed_v where_o all_o saint_n rest_n or_o thus_o here_o lie_v inter_v scotus_n the_o sage_a a_o saint_n and_o martyr_n of_o this_o age._n of_o image_n and_o prayer_n to_o saint_n jonas_n bishop_n of_o orleans_n who_o write_v against_o claudius_n bishop_n of_o turin_n in_o the_o defence_n of_o image_n hold_v that_o par._n the_o image_n of_o saint●_n and_o story_n of_o divine_a thing_n may_v b●e_v paint_v in_o the_o church_n not_o to_o be_v worship_v but_o to_o be_v a_o ornament_n and_o to_o bring_v into_o the_o mind_n of_o simple_a people_n thing_n do_v and_o pass_v but_o to_o adore_v the_o creature_n or_o to_o give_v it_o any_o part_n of_o divine_a honour_n we_o count_v it_o say_v he_o 699_o a_o vile_a wickedness_n detest_a the_o do●r_n thereof_o as_o worthy_a to_o be_v accurse_v it_o be_v fl●t_o impiete_a 701._o say_v the_o same_o jonas_n out_o of_o origen_n to_o adore_v any_o save_o the_o father_n son_n and_o holy_a ghost_n agobardus_n bishop_n of_o lion_n say_v 253._o that_o the_o ancient_n they_o have_v the_o picture_n of_o the_o saint_n but_o it_o be_v for_o history_n sake_n and_o not_o for_o adoration_n and_o that_o none_o of_o th●_n ancient_a catholic_n haply_o think_v that_o image_n be_v to_o be_v worship_v or_o adore_v and_o 254_o the_o orthodox_n father_n for_o avoid_v of_o superstition_n do_v careful_o provide_v that_o no_o picture_n shall_v be_v set_v up_o in_o church_n lest_o that_o which_o be_v worship_v shall_v be_v paint_v on_o the_o wall_n rhemigius_n say_v 96._o that_o neither_o image_n nor_o angel_n be_v to_o be_v adore_v and_o 8._o walasfridus_fw-la strabo_n will_v not_o have_v divine_a honour_n give_v to_o aught_o that_o be_v make_v by_o we_o or_o any_o other_o creature_n now_o what_o say_v the_o papist_n to_o these_o testimony_n baronius_n yield_v we_o walafridus_n strabo_n jonas_n bishop_n of_o or●leance_n hincmarus_n archbishop_n of_o rheims_n and_o say_v 8._o that_o they_o forsake_v the_o receive_a opinion_n of_o the_o church_n and_o yet_o they_o be_v ever_o hold_v sound_a catholic_n bellarmine_n say_v jonas_n that_o jonas_n be_v overtake_v with_o agobard_n his_o error_n and_o other_o bishop_n of_o france_n in_o that_o age_n and_o therefore_o put_v in_o a_o caveat_n that_o jonas_n must_v be_v read_v wary_o so_o that_o by_o their_o own_o confession_n the_o learn_a and_o famous_a man_n of_o this_o age_n stand_v for_o we_o in_o this_o point_n &_o this_o make_v they_o seek_v to_o suppress_v such_o testimony_n as_o be_v give_v of_o they_o papirius_n massonus_n set_v forth_o this_o book_n of_o agobards_n and_o deliver_v the_o argument_n thereof_o to_o be_v this_o 7._o detect_v most_o manifest_o the_o error_n of_o the_o grecians_n touch_v image_n &_o picture_n he_o to_o wit_n bishop_n agobard_fw-mi deny_v t●at_a they_o ought_v to_o be_v worship_v which_o opinion_n all_o we_o catholic_n do_v allow_v and_o follow_v the_o testimony_n of_o gregory_n the_o great_a concern_v they_o now_o this_o passage_n the_o spanish_a inquisitor_n in_o their_o expurgatorie_n index_n 1612._o command_v t●_n be_v blot_v out_o and_o this_o be_v according_o 551._o perform_v by_o the_o divine_n of_o collen_n in_o their_o late_a corrupt_a edition_n of_o the_o great_a bibliothek_n of_o the_o ancient_a father_n to_o close_v up_o this_o point_n charles_n the_o great_a be_v second_v by_o his_o son_n lewis_n the_o godly_a for_o by_o his_o appointment_n the_o doctor_n of_o france_n ●io_fw-la assemble_v at_o paris_n in_o the_o year_n 842_o and_o there_o condemn_v the_o adoration_n of_o image_n it_o be_v not_o strange_a say_v 〈…〉_z ambrose_n ansber●us_n that_o our_o prayer_n and_o tear_n be_v not_o offer_v up_o unto_o god_n by_o we_o but_o by_o our_o high_a priest_n since_o that_o saint_n paul_n exhort_v we_o to_o offer_v up_o the_o sacrifice_n of_o praise_n unto_o god_n haymo_n upon_o those_o word_n of_o isaiah_n 〈◊〉_d enim_fw-la pater_fw-la noster_fw-la thou_o o_o lord_n be_v our_o father_n isay._n 6●_n ver_fw-la 16._o ●aith_o 〈◊〉_d et_fw-la rectè_fw-la solum_fw-la invocamus_fw-la ac_fw-la d●p_n ecamur_fw-la te_fw-la and_o we_o do_v right_a only_o to_o invocate_v thou_o and_o to_o make_v our_o supplication_n to_o thou_o of_o faith_n and_o merit_n claudius_n scotus_n say_v religion_n that_o faith_n alone_o save_v we_o because_o by_o the_o work_n of_o the_o law_n no_o man_n shall_v be_v justify_v yet_o he_o add_v withal_o this_o caution_n 3._o not_o as_o if_o the_o work_n of_o the_o law_n shall_v be_v contemn_v and_o without_o they_o a_o simple_a faith_n so_o he_o call_v that_o solitary_a faith_n which_o be_v a_o simple_a faith_n indeed_o shall_v be_v desire_v but_o that_o the_o work_n themselves_o shall_v be_v adorn_v with_o the_o faith_n of_o christ._n rhemigius_n say_v 32._o that_o in_o truth_n those_o only_o be_v happy_a who_o be_v free_o justify_v of_o grace_n and_o not_o of_o merit_n haymo_n say_v 63._o we_o be_v save_v by_o god_n grace_n and_o not_o our_o own_o merit_n for_o we_o have_v no_o merit_n at_o all_o ambros._n ansbertus_n expound_v that_o place_n revel_v 19_o
waldenses_n from_o such_o foul_a imputation_n the_o first_o article_n object_v parson_n say_v they_o hold_v that_o when_o the_o flesh_n do_v burn_v that_o all_o conjunction_n with_o man_n or_o woman_n be_v lawful_a without_o distinction_n the_o three_o conversion_n the_o 3_o part_n chap._n 3_o nu_fw-la 12._o answer_n indeed_o many_o have_v bear_v false_a witness_n against_o they_o but_o their_o witness_n do_v not_o agree_v together_o 14.56_o i_o know_v this_o be_v object_v by_o parson_n and_o other_o and_o yet_o reinerius_n who_o be_v one_o of_o their_o inquisitor_n say_v of_o they_o as_o be_v already_o allege_v that_o they_o make_v a_o great_a show_n of_o godliness_n and_o live_v righteous_o before_o man_n and_o believe_v all_o thing_n right_o touch_v god_n and_o concern_v all_o other_o article_n of_o the_o creed_n again_o casti_fw-la sunt_fw-la leonistae_fw-la the_o leonist_n live_v chaste_o and_o again_o quae_fw-la libet_fw-la naturâ_fw-la turpia_fw-la devitant_fw-la they_o avoid_v whatsoever_o be_v natural_o dishonest_a claudius_n seisselius_fw-la archbishop_n of_o turin_n a_o man_n in_o great_a credit_n under_o lewes_n the_o twelve_o king_n of_o france_n although_o he_o have_v write_v a_o book_n express_o against_o the_o waldenses_n yet_o he_o thus_o far_o clear_v they_o say_v 9_o that_o it_o make_v much_o for_o the_o confirmation_n and_o toleration_n of_o that_o profession_n that_o set_v aside_o difference_n in_o point_n of_o faith_n in_o other_o thing_n they_o wellnigh_o lead_v a_o more_o godly_a life_n than_o other_o christian_n for_o they_o swear_v not_o unless_o they_o he_o constrain_v they_o seldom_o take_v the_o name_n of_o the_o lord_n in_o vain_a and_o they_o be_v very_o careful_a to_o keep_v their_o promise_n when_o some_o of_o the_o cardinal_n and_o prelate_n accuse_v the_o remainder_n of_o the_o waldenses_n in_o merindol_n and_o cabrier_n that_o they_o be_v heretic_n sorcerer_n and_o incestuous_a person_n and_o thereupon_o move_v that_o good_a king_n lewis_n the_o twelve_o to_o root_v they_o out_o the_o waldenses_n have_v notice_n hereof_o send_v their_o deputy_n to_o his_o majesty_n to_o declare_v unto_o he_o their_o innocence_n whereupon_o the_o prelate_n be_v instant_a upon_o the_o king_n not_o to_o give_v such_o heretic_n any_o access_n or_o audience_n etc._n but_o the_o king_n answer_v that_o if_o he_o be_v to_o make_v war_n against_o the_o turk_n he_o will_v first_o of_o all_o hear_v he_o whereupon_o the_o king_n send_v master_n adam_n fume_v his_o master_n of_o request_n and_o one_o doctor_n parvi_n his_o confessor_n to_o search_v and_o inquire_v both_o into_o their_o life_n and_o religion_n the_o commissioner_n according_o visit_v those_o place_n and_o upon_o their_o return_n relate_v to_o the_o king_n what_o they_o have_v find_v namely_o that_o 419._o infant_n be_v baptize_v the_o article_n of_o faith_n be_v teach_v the_o lord_n prayer_n the_o ten_o commandment_n the_o lord_n day_n observe_v the_o word_n of_o god_n preach_v and_o no_o show_n of_o wickedness_n or_o fornication_n to_o be_v perceive_v among_o they_o ibid._n only_o they_o find_v not_o any_o image_n in_o their_o church_n nor_o any_o ornament_n belong_v to_o the_o mass_n the_o king_n hear_v this_o report_n of_o the_o commissioner_n say_v and_o he_o bind_v it_o with_o a_o oath_n that_o they_o be_v better_a man_n than_o he_o or_o his_o people_n better_a than_o himself_o and_o the_o rest_n of_o his_o subject_n and_o thus_o we_o have_v clear_v the_o waldenses_n from_o parson_n his_o first_o imputation_n a_o foul_a slander_n indeed_o but_o yet_o such_o as_o we_o find_v octavius_n be_v cast_v upon_o the_o ancient_a christian_n as_o well_o as_o upon_o they_o and_o most_o unjust_o and_o untrue_o upon_o both_o of_o they_o object_n object_v they_o hold_v that_o it_o be_v not_o lawful_a for_o christian_n to_o swear_v at_o all_o for_o any_o cause_n whatsoever_o because_o it_o be_v write_v do_v not_o swear_v matthew_n 5._o james_n 5._o they_o hold_v also_o that_o the_o magistrate_n ought_v not_o to_o condemn_v any_o to_o death_n because_o it_o be_v write_v judge_v not_o matthew_n chap._n 7._o luke_n chap._n 6._o parson_n loco_fw-la citato_fw-la answer_n claudius_n seissel_n as_o before_o be_v allege_v say_v indeed_o that_o they_o do_v not_o swear_v unless_o they_o be_v constrain_v belike_o then_o be_v lawful_o call_v they_o refuse_v not_o to_o swear_v in_o judgement_n in_o trivial_a matter_n they_o will_v not_o swear_v rash_o according_a whereunto_o they_o allege_v our_o saviour_n precept_n beside_o they_o affirm_v 4._o that_o there_o be_v lawful_a oath_n tend_v to_o the_o honour_n of_o god_n and_o their_o neighbour_n good_a and_o they_o allege_v that_o place_n in_o the_o six_o to_o the_o hebrew_n 16._o that_o a_o oath_n for_o confirmation_n to_o they_o be_v a_o end_n of_o all_o strife_n the_o other_o cavil_v arise_v upon_o their_o complain_n that_o the_o magistrate_n deliver_v they_o to_o death_n without_o any_o other_o knowledge_n of_o the_o cause_n than_o the_o bare_a report_n of_o their_o inquisitor_n priest_n and_o friar_n who_o be_v party_n and_o their_o profess_a enemy_n otherwise_o the_o waldensian_a doctrine_n be_v ibid._n that_o they_o be_v not_o to_o suffer_v the_o malefactor_n to_o live_v object_n they_o hold_v that_o the_o apostle_n creed_n be_v to_o be_v contemn_v and_o no_o account_n at_o all_o to_o be_v make_v of_o it_o and_o that_o no_o other_o prayer_n be_v to_o be_v use_v but_o only_o the_o pater_fw-la noster_fw-la set_v down_o in_o scripture_n parson_n quò_fw-la suprà_fw-la answer_n this_o be_v a_o idle_a cavil_n for_o reinerius_n have_v already_o tell_v we_o that_o they_o believe_v all_o the_o article_n contain_v in_o the_o creed_n beside_o in_o their_o book_n they_o have_v very_o good_a and_o catholic_a exposition_n of_o the_o creed_n do_v these_o man_n then_o slight_a the_o creed_n they_o do_v not_o indeed_o hold_v the_o creed_n to_o be_v a_o prayer_n no_o more_o do_v they_o that_o of_o the_o angel_n hail_v to_o mary_n they_o hold_v it_o to_o be_v a_o salutation_n and_o no_o direct_a invocation_n as_o claudius_n seissel_n say_v 54._o it_o follow_v not_o hence_o because_o they_o hold_v not_o the_o creed_n nor_o the_o angelical_a salutation_n to_o be_v any_o direct_a prayer_n that_o therefore_o they_o neglect_v the_o creed_n the_o other_o allegation_n be_v as_o idle_a for_o their_o own_o writer_n reyner_n and_o other_o record_v divers_a other_o of_o their_o prayer_n as_o for_o grace_n before_o meat_n this_o he_o that_o bless_v the_o five_o barley_n loaf_n and_o two_o fish_n in_o the_o desert_n to_o his_o disciple_n bless_v this_o table_n unto_o we_o and_o after_o meat_n thus_o god_n which_o have_v give_v we_o corporal_a food_n give_v we_o also_o spiritual_a life_n object_n they_o hold_v that_o the_o power_n of_o consecrate_v the_o body_n of_o christ_n and_o of_o hear_v confession_n be_v leave_v by_o christ_n not_o only_o to_o priest_n but_o also_o to_o lay-man_n if_o they_o be_v just_a parson_n ibid._n answer_n the_o first_o part_n of_o this_o article_n they_o hold_v not_o but_o rather_o the_o contrary_a that_o neither_o priest_n nor_o laikes_n can_v consecrate_v the_o body_n of_o christ_n for_o reinerius_n say_v leonistis_n they_o do_v not_o believe_v the_o sacrament_n to_o be_v the_o true_a body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n but_o the_o bread_n consecrate_v be_v call_v in_o a_o certain_a figure_n the_o body_n of_o christ_n as_o it_o be_v say_v the_o rock_n be_v christ_n and_o the_o like_a for_o the_o second_o they_o say_v true_o and_o we_o hold_v that_o we_o be_v to_o confess_v our_o fault_n one_o to_o another_o james_n 5_o 16._o yea_o though_o they_o be_v lay-people_n so_o they_o be_v godly_a and_o discreet_a and_o able_a to_o counsel_v and_o comfort_v we_o but_o especial_o to_o the_o discreet_a and_o learned_a minister_n of_o god_n word_n to_o receive_v from_o he_o ghostly_a comfort_n counsel_n and_o upon_o our_o hearty_a repentance_n absolution_n object_n they_o hold_v that_o no_o priest_n must_v have_v any_o live_n at_o all_o but_o must_v live_v on_o alm_n and_o that_o no_o bishop_n or_o other_o dignity_n be_v to_o be_v admit_v in_o the_o clergy_n but_o that_o all_o must_v be_v equal_a parson_n ibid._n answer_n that_o their_o minister_n may_v not_o lawful_o take_v and_o enjoy_v living_n or_o that_o it_o be_v sin_n so_o to_o do_v they_o teach_v not_o but_o be_v sorry_a 1572._o they_o have_v not_o sufficient_a stay_v living_n for_o they_o whereby_o they_o may_v have_v more_o time_n to_o their_o study_n and_o great_a opportunity_n to_o instruct_v they_o with_o necessary_a doctrine_n and_o knowledge_v but_o they_o be_v not_o ashamed_a of_o their_o minister_n that_o be_v content_a to_o work_v with_o their_o hand_n to_o get_v their_o live_n as_o the_o apostle_n have_v do_v before_o they_o so_o that_o if_o they_o speak_v aught_o that_o look_v that_o way_n
renown_v among_o the_o northern_a english_a and_o one_o that_o be_v well_o acquaint_v with_o bishop_n tonstall_n his_o kinsman_n and_o diocesan_n say_v 40._o i_o remember_v that_o bishop_n tonstall_n often_o tol●e_v i_o that_o pope_n innocent_a the_o three_o have_v do_v very_o unadu●sedly_o in_o that_o he_o have_v make_v the_o opinion_n of_o transubstantiation_n a_o article_n of_o faith_n see_v in_o former_a time_n it_o be_v free_a to_o hold_v or_o refuse_v that_o opinion_n the_o same_o bishop_n tell_v i_o and_o many_o time_n ingenuous_o confess_v 46._o that_o scotus_n be_v of_o opinion_n that_o the_o church_n may_v better_v and_o with_o more_o ease_n make_v use_v of_o some_o more_o commodious_a exposition_n of_o those_o word_n in_o the_o holy_a supper_n and_o the_o bishop_n be_v of_o the_o mind_n that_o we_o ought_v to_o speak_v reverent_o of_o the_o holy_a supper_n but_o that_o the_o opinion_n of_o transubstantiation_n may_v well_o be_v let_v alone_o this_o thing_n also_o the_o same_o bishop_n tonstall_n be_v wont_a to_o affirm_v both_o in_o word_n and_o write_n that_o innocent_a the_o three_o know_v not_o what_o he_o do_v when_o he_o put_v transubstantiation_n among_o the_o article_n of_o faith_n and_o he_o say_v that_o innocentius_n want_v learned_a man_n about_o he_o and_o indeed_o say_v the_o bishop_n if_o i_o have_v be_v of_o his_o council_n i_o make_v no_o doubt_n but_o i_o may_v have_v be_v able_a to_o have_v dissuade_v he_o from_o that_o resolution_n by_o this_o that_o have_v be_v say_v it_o appear_v that_o transubstantiation_n be_v neither_o hold_v nor_o know_v universal_o in_o the_o church_n before_o the_o lateran_n council_n twelve_o hundred_o year_n after_o christ_n and_o that_o when_o it_o begin_v to_o be_v receive_v as_o a_o matter_n of_o faith_n it_o be_v but_o believe_v upon_o the_o church_n authority_n and_o this_o church_n virtual_o and_o in_o effect_n be_v pope_n innocent_a in_o the_o lateran_n council_n twelve_o hundred_o year_n and_o more_o after_o christ_n before_o which_o time_n there_o be_v no_o certainty_n nor_o necessity_n of_o believe_v it_o and_o the_o council_n may_v have_v choose_v another_o sense_n of_o christ_n word_n more_o easy_a and_o in_o all_o appearance_n more_o true_a there_o be_v no_o scripture_n sufficient_a to_o convince_v it_o of_o image_n and_o prayer_n to_o saint_n honorius_n of_o authun_n in_o france_n say_v imag._n there_o be_v none_o that_o be_v godly_a wise_a who_o will_v worship_v and_o adore_v the_o cross_n but_o christ_n crucify_v on_o the_o cross_n roger_n hoveden_n our_o native_a historian_n who_o live_v in_o the_o begin_n of_o this_o age_n condemn_v the_o adoration_n of_o image_n for_o speak_v of_o the_o synodall_n epistle_n write_v by_o the_o father_n of_o the_o second_o nicen_n council_n wherein_o image_n worship_n be_v establish_v he_o tell_v we_o 792._o that_o charles_n the_o king_n of_o france_n send_v into_o this_o isle_n a_o synodall_n book_n direct_v unto_o he_o from_o constantinople_n wherein_o there_o be_v divers_a offensive_a passage_n but_o especial_o this_o one_o that_o by_o the_o joint_a consent_n of_o all_o the_o doctor_n of_o the_o east_n and_o no_o few_o than_o 300_o bishop_n it_o be_v decree_v that_o image_n shall_v be_v worship_v quod_fw-la ecclesia_fw-la dei_fw-la execratur_fw-la say_v he_o which_o the_o church_n of_o god_n abhor_v guilielmus_fw-la altissiodorensis_n say_v 6._o that_o for_o such_o and_o such_o reason_n many_o do_v say_v that_o neither_o we_o pray_v unto_o the_o saint_n nor_o they_o pray_v for_o we_o but_o improper_o in_o respect_n we_o pray_v unto_o god_n that_o the_o merit_n of_o the_o saint_n may_v h●lpe_v we_o of_o faith_n and_o merit_n thomas_n aquinas_n say_v 1._o that_o work_n be_v not_o the_o cause_n why_o a_o man_n be_v just_a before_o god_n but_o rather_o they_o be_v the_o execution_n and_o manifestation_n of_o his_o justice_n for_o no_o man_n be_v justify_v by_o work_n but_o by_o the_o habit_n of_o faith_n infuse_v yea_o justification_n be_v do_v by_o faith_n only_o and_o aquinas_n in_o his_o commentary_n on_o the_o galatian_n in_o the_o place_n allege_v though_o at_o the_o first_o he_o mention_v such_o work_n as_o be_v perform_v by_o the_o power_n of_o nature_n yet_o afterward_o he_o speak_v also_o of_o work_n wrought_v by_o the_o power_n of_o grace_n and_o of_o such_o as_o saint_n james_n mention_n chap._n 2._o saying_n be_v not_o abraham_n justify_v by_o work_n but_o these_o be_v work_n of_o grace_n and_o yet_o thomas_n exclude_v from_o justification_n work_v do_v in_o the_o state_n of_o grace_n and_o say_v justification_n be_v do_v by_o faith_n only_o bonaventure_n say_v 13._o that_o by_o only_a faith_n in_o christ_n passion_n all_o the_o fault_n be_v remit_v and_o without_o the_o faith_n of_o h●m_n no_o man_n be_v justify_v velosillus_n in_o his_o animadversion_n upon_o the_o write_n of_o the_o father_n and_o doctor_n of_o the_o church_n observe_v justicoat_n that_o scotus_n hold_v not_o merit_v of_o condignity_n and_o vega_n say_v that_o thomas_n aquinas_n the_o flower_n of_o the_o schoole-divines_a constant_o affirm_v that_o a_o sinner_n can_v not_o merit_v his_o own_o justification_n either_o of_o congruity_n or_o of_o condignity_n and_o thus_o have_v these_o man_n give_v in_o their_o verdict_n but_o now_o let_v we_o hear_v themselves_o speak_v there_o be_v no_o action_n of_o we_o say_v scotus_n 2._o that_o without_o the_o special_a ordinance_n of_o god_n and_o his_o divine_a acceptation_n be_v worthy_a of_o the_o reward_n with_o which_o god_n reward_v they_o that_o serve_v he_o in_o respect_n of_o the_o inward_a goodness_n that_o it_o have_v from_o the_o cause_n of_o it_o because_o always_o the_o reward_n be_v great_a than_o the_o merit_n and_o strict_a justice_n do_v not_o give_v a_o better_a thing_n for_o a_o thing_n of_o less_o value_n and_o again_o he_o say_v 6._o that_o speak_v of_o strict_a justice_n god_n be_v bind_v to_o none_o of_o we_o to_o bestow_v reward_n of_o so_o high_a perfection_n as_o he_o do_v the_o reward_n be_v so_o much_o great_a in_o worth_n than_o any_o merit_n of_o we_o the_o prophet_n david_n say_v 547._o the_o learned_a archbishop_n of_o armagh_n have_v full_o clear_v this_o case_n in_o that_o one_o sentence_n psalm_n 62.12_o with_o thou_o oh_o lord_n be_v mercy_n for_o thou_o r●ward●st_v every_o man_n according_a to_o his_o work_n original_o therefore_o and_o in_o itself_o this_o reward_n proceed_v mere_o from_o god_n free_a bounty_n and_o mercy_n but_o accidental_o in_o regard_n that_o god_n have_v tie_v himself_o by_o his_o word_n and_o promise_n to_o confer_v such_o a_o reward_n it_o now_o prove_v in_o a_o sort_n to_o be_v a_o act_n of_o justice_n in_o regard_n of_o the_o faithful_a performance_n of_o his_o promise_n for_o promise_v among_o honest_a man_n be_v count_v a_o due_a debt_n but_o the_o thing_n promise_v be_v free_a and_o on_o our_o part_n altogether_o undeserved_a if_o the_o promiser_n do_v not_o perform_v and_o prove_v not_o to_o be_v so_o good_a as_o his_o word_n he_o can_v not_o proper_o be_v say_v to_o do_v we_o wrong_n but_o rather_o to_o wrong_v himself_o by_o impayr_v his_o own_o credit_n and_o therefore_o aquinas_n confess_v um_o that_o god_n be_v not_o hereby_o simple_o make_v a_o debtor_n to_o we_o but_o to_o himself_o in_o as_o much_o as_o it_o be_v requisite_a that_o his_o own_o ordinance_n shall_v be_v fullfil_v william_n bishop_n of_o paris_n treat_v of_o prayer_n give_v we_o this_o caveat_n 52._o not_o to_o lean_v on_o the_o weak_a and_o frail_a foundation_n of_o our_o own_o merit_n but_o whole_o deny_v ourselves_o and_o distrust_v our_o own_o strength_n to_o rely_v on_o the_o sole_a favour_n and_o mercy_n of_o god_n and_o in_o so_o do_v say_v he_o the_o lord_n will_v never_o fail_v we_o cassander_n say_v operi●_n that_o both_o ancient_a a●d_n modern_a with_o full_a consent_n profess_v to_o repos●_n themselves_o whole_o upon_o the_o mere_a mercy_n of_o god_n and_o merit_n of_o christ_n with_o a_o humble_a renunciation_n of_o all_o worthiness_n in_o their_o own_o work_n and_o this_o doctrine_n cassander_n derive_v through_o the_o low_a age_n of_o the_o schoolman_n and_o late_a writer_n thomas_n of_o aquine_n durand_n adrian_n de_fw-fr trajecto_fw-la afterward_o pope_n adrian_n the_o six_o clictoveus_n and_o deliver_v it_o for_o the_o voice_n of_o the_o then_o present_a church_n the_o fourteenth_n centurie_n from_o the_o year_n of_o grace_n 1300._o to_o 1400._o pap_n what_o say_v you_o of_o this_o fourteen_o age_n prot._n in_o this_o age_n learning_n begin_v to_o revive_v for_o so_o it_o come_v to_o pass_v that_o divers_a learned_a man_n among_o the_o greek_n abhor_v such_o cruelty_n as_o the_o turk_n use_v against_o their_o countryman_n the_o grecian_n leave_v those_o part_n and_o flee_v into_o italy_n now_o by_o their_o mean_n the_o
the_o friar_n be_v not_o liegeman_n to_o the_o king_n 23._o ne_o subject_n to_o his_o law_n for_o though_o they_o stealen_v man_n child_n to_o enter_v into_o their_o order_n it_o be_v say_v there_o go_v no_o law_n upon_o they_o friar_n 27._o saien_v apert_o that_o if_o the_o king_n and_o lord_n and_o other_o man_n stonden_v thus_o against_o their_o beg_n and_o other_o thing_n friar_n will_v go_v out_o of_o the_o land_n and_o come_v again_o with_o bright_a head_n and_o look_v whether_o this_o be_v treason_n or_o no_o friart_n article_n faynen_n that_o though_o a_o abbot_n and_o all_o his_o covent_n be_v open_a traitor_n yet_o the_o king_n may_v not_o take_v from_o they_o a_o half_a penny_n friar_n ibid._n also_o destroyen_fw-mi the_o article_n of_o christian_a faith_n i_o belief_n a_o common_a or_o general_a church_n for_o they_o teachen_fw-ge that_o th●_n man_n that_o shall_v be_v damn_v be_v member_n of_o holy_a church_n and_o thus_o they_o wedden_a christ_n and_o the_o devil_n together_o friar_n 44._o by_o hypocrisy_n binden_a man_n to_o impossible_a thing_n that_o they_o may_v not_o do_v for_o they_o binden_v they_o over_o the_o commandment_n of_o god_n as_o they_o themselves_o say_v friar_n 24._o waste_v the_o treasure_n of_o the_o land_n forget_v dispensation_n vain_a pardon_n and_o privilege_n but_o of_o the_o pardon_n that_o man_n usen_v to_o day_n from_o the_o court_n of_o rome_n z_o they_o have_v no_o sikerness_n that_o be_v certainty_n by_o holy_a writ_n ne_o reason_n ne_o ensample_n of_o christ_n or_o his_o apostle_n by_o this_o we_o see_v that_o wickliff_n stout_o oppose_v those_o innovatour_n the_o friar_n who_o like_o their_o successor_n the_o jesuit_n teach_v and_o practise_v obedience_n to_o another_o sovereign_n than_o the_o king_n persecution_n for_o preach_v the_o gospel_n exemption_n of_o clea●gy-men_n the_o use_n of_o legend_n in_o the_o church_n and_o read_v of_o fable_n to_o the_o people_n pardon_n and_o indulgence_n the_o heresy_n of_o a_o accident_n without_o a_o subject_n singular_a and_o blind_a obedience_n and_o last_o work_v of_o supererogation_n now_o whereas_o wickliff_n be_v repute_v a_o heretic_n it_o be_v likely_a that_o this_o imputation_n be_v lay_v upon_o he_o especial_o by_o friar_n to_o who_o innovation_n he_o be_v a_o profess_a enemy_n pap_n many_o exception_n be_v take_v against_o wickliff_n and_o namely_o that_o he_o hold_v 1._o that_o god_n ought_v to_o obey_v the_o devil_n prot._n our_o learned_a antiquary_n of_o oxford_n doctor_n james_n have_v make_v wickliff_n apology_n and_o answer_v such_o slanderous_a objection_n as_o be_v urge_v by_o parson_n the_o apologist_n and_o other_o now_o for_o the_o objection_n make_v there_o be_v neither_o colour_n nor_o savour_n of_o truth_n in_o it_o there_o be_v no_o such_o thing_n object_v to_o he_o in_o the_o convocation_n at_o lambeth_n neither_o can_v his_o adversary_n show_v any_o such_o word_n out_o of_o any_o book_n write_v by_o wickliff_n although_o he_o write_v very_o many_o indeed_o we_o find_v the_o quite_o contrary_a in_o his_o work_n say_v his_o apologist_n for_o wickliff_n say_v conformity_n that_o the_o devil_n be_v clepid_a that_o be_v call_v god_n angel_n for_o he_o may_v do_v nothing_o but_o at_o god_n suffering_n and_o that_o he_o serve_v god_n in_o torment_v of_o sinful_a man_n the_o phrase_n indeed_o be_v strange_a and_o if_o either_o he_o or_o any_o of_o his_o scholar_n use_v such_o speech_n their_o meaning_n haply_o be_v that_o god_n not_o in_o his_o own_o person_n but_o in_o his_o creature_n yield_v obedience_n to_o the_o devil_n that_o be_v sometime_o give_v he_o power_n over_o his_o creature_n pap_n wickliff_n teach_v 3._o that_o magistrate_n and_o master_n be_v not_o to_o be_v obey_v by_o their_o subject_n and_o servant_n so_o long_o as_o they_o be_v in_o deadly_a sin_n prot._n even_o as_o light_v housewife_n lay_v their_o bastard_n at_o honest_a man_n door_n so_o you_o false_o father_n this_o misbegotten_a opinion_n on_o wickliff_n which_o some_o of_o your_o own_o side_n say_v 81._o belong_v to_o one_o john_n parvi_n a_o doctor_n of_o sorbone_n and_o indeed_o in_o right_a it_o be_v your_o own_o inasmuch_o as_o you_o upon_o colour_n and_o pretence_n of_o heresy_n in_o prince_n absolve_v subject_n from_o their_o allegiance_n subject_n and_o raise_v they_o up_o in_o arm_n against_o their_o lawful_a sovereign_n witness_v your_o bloody_a massacre_n in_o france_n the_o death_n of_o the_o two_o last_o henry_n in_o france_n the_o untimely_a death_n of_o the_o prince_n of_o orange_n the_o many_o attempt_n and_o treason_n against_o queen_n elizabeth_n as_o also_o that_o hellish_a design_n of_o the_o gunpowder_n treason_n but_o supppose_v wickliff_n say_v so_o yet_o his_o word_n may_v have_v a_o tolerable_a construction_n to_o wit_n that_o a_o prince_n be_v in_o state_n of_o mortal_a sin_n cease_v to_o be_v a_o prince_n any_o long_o he_o cease_v to_o be_v so_o in_o respect_n of_o any_o spiritual_a right_n or_o title_n to_o his_o place_n that_o he_o can_v plead_v with_o god_n if_o he_o be_v please_v to_o take_v the_o advantage_n of_o the_o forfeiture_n but_o that_o in_o respect_n of_o man_n he_o have_v a_o good_a title_n still_o in_o the_o course_n of_o mundane_a justice_n so_o that_o whosoever_o shall_v lift_v up_o his_o hand_n against_o he_o offer_v he_o wrong_n 86._o wickliff_n indeed_o admonish_v the_o king_n and_o all_o other_o inferior_a officer_n and_o magistrate_n as_o elsewhere_o he_o do_v bishop_n that_o he_o bear_v not_o the_o sword_n in_o vain_a but_o to_o do_v the_o office_n of_o a_o king_n well_o and_o true_o to_o see_v his_o law_n right_o execute_v wherein_o if_o he_o fail_v than_o he_o tell_v he_o that_o he_o be_v not_o proper_o and_o true_o a_o king_n that_o be_v in_o effect_n 513._o and_o operation_n which_o word_n be_v speak_v by_o way_n of_o exhortation_n but_o so_o far_o be_v he_o from_o mutiny_n himself_o or_o persuade_v other_o to_o rebellion_n that_o never_o any_o man_n of_o his_o rank_n for_o the_o time_n wherein_o he_o live_v do_v more_o stout_o maintain_v the_o king_n supremacy_n in_o all_o cause_n as_o well_o as_o over_o all_o person_n ecclesiastical_a and_o civil_a against_o all_o usurp_a and_o foreign_a jurisdiction_n and_o one_o of_o his_o reason_n be_v this_o that_o otherwise_o he_o shall_v not_o be_v king_n over_o all_o england_n but_o regulus_n parvae_fw-la partis_fw-la 36._o a_o petty_a governor_n of_o some_o small_a part_n of_o the_o realm_n pap_n wickliff_n teach_v 4._o that_o so_o long_o as_o a_o man_n be_v in_o deadly_a sin_n he_o be_v no_o bishop_n nor_o prelate_n neither_o do_v he_o consecrate_v or_o baptize_v prot._n if_o wickliff_n say_v so_o he_o say_v no_o more_o than_o the_o father_n and_o a_o council_n say_v before_o he_o saint_n ambrose_n say_v 4._o unless_o thou_o embrace_v and_o follow_v the_o good-worke_n of_o a_o bishop_n a_o bishop_n thou_o can_v not_o be_v the_o provincial_n council_n say_v 4._o whosoever_o after_o the_o order_n of_o bishop_n or_o priesthood_n shall_v say_v they_o have_v be_v defile_v with_o mortal_a sin_n let_v they_o be_v remove_v from_o the_o foresay_a order_n the_o truth_n be_v wickliff_n live_v in_o a_o very_a corrupt_a time_n and_o this_o make_v he_o so_o sharp_o inveigh_v against_o the_o abuse_n of_o the_o clergy_n but_o abusus_fw-la non_fw-la tollit_fw-la rei_fw-la usum_fw-la and_o yet_o wickliff_n write_v ms._n against_o they_o that_o will_v not_o honour_v their_o prelate_n and_o he_o elsewhere_o express_v his_o own_o meaning_n that_o 443._o it_o be_v not_o the_o name_n but_o the_o life_n that_o make_v a_o bishop_n that_o 443._o if_o a_o man_n have_v the_o name_n of_o a_o prelate_n and_o do_v not_o answer_v the_o reason_n thereof_o in_o sincerity_n of_o doctrine_n and_o integrity_n of_o life_n but_o live_v scandalous_o and_o in_o mortal_a sin_n that_o he_o be_v but_o a_o nomine-tenus_a sacerdos_n a_o bishop_n or_o priest_n in_o name_n not_o in_o truth_n nevertheless_o his_o ministerial_a act_n may_v be_v available_a for_o thus_o say_v wickliff_n 138._o unless_o the_o christian_a priest_n be_v unite_v unto_o christ_n by_o grace_n christ_n can_v be_v his_o saviour_n nec_fw-la sine_fw-la falsitate_fw-la ●icit_fw-la verba_fw-la sacramentalia_fw-la neither_o can_v he_o speak_v the_o sacramental_a word_n without_o lie_v licèt_fw-la prosint_fw-la capacibus_fw-la though_o the_o worthy_a receiver_n be_v hereby_o nothing_o hinder_v from_o grace_n pap_n wickliff_n hold_v loccitat_fw-la that_o it_o be_v not_o lawful_a for_o any_o ecclesiastical_a person_n to_o have_v any_o temporal_a possession_n or_o property_n in_o any_o thing_n but_o shall_v beg_v prot._n this_o imputation_n be_v untrue_a for_o what_o be_v the_o land_n and_o good_n of_o bishop_n cathedral_n church_n or_o otherwise_o belong_v to_o religious_a house_n which_o be_v give_v deo_fw-la &_o ecclesi●_n be_v they_o
have_v be_v call_v lollard_n of_o lollium_n cockle_n or_o darnel_n and_o so_o say_v the_o gloss_n in_o linwood_n lollardi_fw-la as_o also_o in_o the_o squire_n prologue_n in_o chaucer_n i_o smell_v a_o loller_n in_o the_o w●nde_n quoth_v he_o abide_v for_o god_n digne_fw-fr passion_n for_o i_o shall_v have_v a_o predication_n this_o loller_n here_o will_v preach_v we_o somewhat_o here_o shall_v he_o not_o preach_v here_o shall_v he_o no_o gospel_n gloze_v ne_o teach_v he_o believe_v all_o in_o the_o great_a god_n qu●th_v he_o he_o will_v swoon_v some_o difficulty_n or_o spring_v cockle_n in_o our_o clear_a corn_n but_o they_o be_v call_v lollard_n from_o one_o raynard_n lollard_n 11._o who_o at_o the_o first_o be_v a_o franciscan_a monk_n and_o a_o enemy_n to_o the_o waldenses_n but_o yet_o a_o man_n carry_v with_o a_o sanctify_a desire_n to_o find_v the_o way_n of_o salvation_n he_o afterward_o teach_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o waldenses_n be_v apprehend_v in_o germany_n by_o the_o monk_n inquisitour_n and_o be_v deliver_v to_o the_o secular_a power_n be_v burn_v at_o cologne_n he_o write_v a_o commentary_n upon_o the_o apocalypse_n wherein_o he_o apply_v many_o thing_n to_o the_o pope_n as_o to_o the_o roman_a antichrist_n this_o be_v he_o of_o who_o the_o faithful_a in_o england_n be_v call_v lollard_n where_o he_o teach_v witness_v that_o tower_n in_o london_n which_o at_o this_o present_a be_v call_v by_o his_o name_n lollard_n tower_n where_o the_o faithful_a that_o profess_v his_o religion_n be_v imprison_v john_n l●_n more_o in_o the_o three_o part_n of_o the_o difference_n of_o schism_n 24._o put_v he_o in_o the_o rank_n of_o those_o holy_a man_n that_o have_v foretell_v by_o divine_a revelation_n many_o thing_n that_o have_v come_v to_o pass_v in_o his_o time_n such_o as_o be_v boccace_n saint_n vincent_n of_o valence_n of_o the_o order_n of_o preach_v friar_n jo●chim_n abbot_n of_o ga●abria_n to_o they_o he_o adjoin_v the_o friar_n r●ynard_n lollard_n and_o so_o i_o proceed_v to_o the_o several_a point_n in_o question_n of_o the_o scripture_n suffici●n●y_a and_o canon_n wickliffe_n say_v ●6●_n that_o christ_n law_n suffice_v by_o itself_o to_o rule_v christ_n church_n that_o a_o christian_a 〈◊〉_d well_o understanding_n it_o may_v thence_o gather_v sufficient_a knowledge_n during_o his_o pilgrimage_n h●re_o on_o earth_n lyra_n upon_o those_o word_n in_o the_o gospel_n they_o have_v moses_n and_o the_o prophet_n let_v they_o hear_v they_o luke_n 16.29_o make_v this_o inference_n 29._o moses_n he_o teach_v morality_n and_o what_o be_v our_o duty_n to_o do_v the_o prophet_n teach_v mystery_n and_o what_o we_o be_v to_o believe_v et_fw-la ista_fw-la sufficiunt_fw-la ad_fw-la salutem_fw-la and_o these_o be_v sufficient_a for_o our_o salvation_n and_o therefore_o it_o follow_v hear_v they_o so_o that_o he_o reduce_v all_o to_o two_o head_n the_o agenda_fw-la or_o practical_a part●_n and_o the_o credenda_fw-la or_o article_n of_o the_o creed_n and_o these_o essential_a necessary_n contain_v in_o the_o scripture_n he_o make_v sufficient_a to_o salvation_n among_o the_o sundry_a opinion_n which_o ockam_n reckon_v up_o this_o be_v one_o say_v ockam_n 10._o that_o only_o those_o verity_n be_v to_o be_v esteem_v catholic_a and_o such_o as_o be_v necessary_o to_o be_v believe_v for_o the_o attain_n of_o salvation_n which_o either_o express_o be_v deliver_v in_o scripture_n or_o by_o necessary_a consequence_n may_v be_v infer_v from_o thing_n so_o express_v richard_n fitz-raphe_n archbishop_n of_o armagh_n and_o primate_n of_o ireland_n say_v it_o be_v define_v in_o general_a counsel_n that_o there_o be_v two_o and_o twenty_o authentical_a book_n of_o the_o old_a testament_n 19_o nicholas_n lyra_n the_o convert_a jew_n be_v plentiful_a in_o this_o argument_n now_o that_o i_o have_v by_o god_n help_n tob●am_n say_v he_o write_v upon_o the_o canonical_a book_n of_o holy_a scripture_n begin_v at_o genesis_n and_o so_o go_v on_o to_o the_o end_n trust_v to_o the_o help_n of_o the_o same_o god_n i_o intend_v to_o write_v upon_o those_o other_o book_n that_o be_v not_o canonical_a such_o as_o be_v the_o book_n of_o wisdom_n ecclesiasticus_fw-la judith_n tobias_n and_o the_o book_n of_o macchabee_n and_o withal_o add_v that_o it_o be_v to_o be_v consider_v that_o these_o book_n which_o be_v not_o canonical_a be_v receive_v by_o the_o church_n and_o read_v in_o the_o same_o for_o the_o information_n of_o manner_n yet_o be_v their_o authority_n think_v to_o be_v weak_a to_o prove_v thing_n that_o be_v in_o controversy_n and_o the_o same_o lyra_n write_v upon_o the_o first_o of_o esdras_n the_o first_o chapter_n say_v that_o though_o the_o book_n of_o tobias_n judith_n and_o the_o maccabe_n be_v historical_a book_n yet_o he_o intend_v for_o the_o present_a to_o pass_v by_o they_o and_o not_o to_o comment_v on_o they_o and_o he_o give_v his_o reason_n namely_o quia_fw-la non_fw-la sunt_fw-la de_fw-mi canone_o apud_fw-la judaeos_fw-la nec_fw-la apud_fw-la christianos_n because_o they_o be_v not_o in_o the_o canon_n neither_o with_o the_o jew_n nor_o with_o the_o christian_n wickliff_n also_o hold_v 110._o that_o there_o be_v but_o two_o and_o twenty_o authentical_a book_n of_o the_o old_a testament_n of_o communion_n under_o both_o kind_n and_o number_n of_o sacrament_n the_o custom_n of_o communicate_v in_o both_o kind_n be_v not_o abolish_v in_o the_o begin_n of_o this_o age_n but_o be_v retain_v in_o certain_a place_n especial_o in_o monastery_n until_o the_o year_n of_o our_o lord_n thirteen_o hundred_o and_o more_o thus_o write_v cassander_n 22._o beatus_fw-la rhenanus_fw-la say_v militia_n that_o conradus_n pellicanus_fw-la a_o man_n of_o wonderful_a sanctity_n and_o learning_n do_v find_v in_o the_o first_o constitution_n of_o the_o carthusian_n that_o they_o be_v forbid_v to_o possess_v any_o vessel_n of_o price_n beside_o a_o silver_n chalice_n and_o a_o pipe_n whereby_o the_o lay-people_n may_v suck_v the_o blood_n of_o our_o lord_n durand_n their_o profound_a doctor_n deny_v 3._o matrimony_n to_o be_v a_o sacrament_n proper_o so_o name_v and_o of_o the_o same_o nature_n with_o the_o rest_n or_o to_o give_v grace_n robert_n holcot_n our_o countryman_n deny_v 13_o that_o confirmation_n be_v from_o christ_n institution_n now_o bellarmine_n say_v 23._o that_o christ_n only_o can_v institute_v a_o sacrament_n extreme_a alphonsus_n à_fw-fr castro_n tell_v we_o and_o that_o from_o the_o testimony_n of_o jodocus_n clichtoveus_n and_o thomas_n walden_n a_o bitter_a adversary_n of_o wickliff_n that_o wickliff_n hold_v extreme_a unction_n or_o anneal_v be_v not_o a_o sacrament_n of_o the_o eucharist_n ockam_n say_v 39_o there_o be_v three_o opinion_n of_o transubstantiation_n of_o which_o the_o first_o suppose_v a_o conversion_n of_o the_o sacramental_a element_n the_o second_o a_o annihilation_n the_o three_o affirm_v the_o bread_n to_o be_v in_o such_o sort_n transubstantiate_v into_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n that_o it_o be_v no_o way_n change_v in_o substance_n or_o substantial_o convert_v into_o christ_n body_n or_o do_v cease_v to_o be_v but_o only_o that_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n in_o every_o part_n of_o it_o become_v present_a in_o every_o part_n of_o the_o bread_n this_o opinion_n he_o say_v the_o master_n of_o sentence_n mention_v not_o much_o dislike_a it_n yet_o it_o be_v not_o common_o hold_v their_o own_o proctor_n and_o canonist_n hostiensis_n and_o gaufridus_n tell_v we_o 13_o that_o there_o be_v divers_a in_o those_o day_n who_o teach_v that_o the_o substance_n of_o bread_n do_v remain_v and_o this_o opinion_n say_v they_o be_v not_o to_o be_v reject_v durand_n be_v of_o opinion_n 1._o that_o the_o material_a part_n of_o the_o consecrate_a bread_n be_v not_o convert_v insomuch_o that_o bellarmine_n profess_v acquiescere_fw-la that_o say_v of_o durand_n be_v heretical_a although_o he_o be_v no_o heretic_n because_o he_o be_v ready_a to_o submit_v to_o the_o judgement_n of_o the_o church_n wickliff_n say_v 16._o that_o friar_n perverten_a the_o right_a faith_n of_o the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o auter_n and_o bringen_fw-mi in_o a_o new_a heresy_n of_o a_o accident_n without_o subject_n and_o whence_o holy_a writ_n say_v open_o that_o this_o sacrament_n be_v bread_n that_o we_o breaken_fw-mi and_o god_n body_n they_o sayen_v that_o it_o be_v neither_o bread_n nor_o god_n body_n but_o accident_n without_o subject_n and_o nought_o and_o thus_o they_o leaven_n holy_a write_v and_o take_v new_a heresy_n on_o christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n and_o on_o austin_n jerom_n ambrose_n isidore_n and_o other_o saint_n and_o the_o court_n of_o rome_n and_o all_o true_a christian_a man_n that_o hold_v the_o faith_n of_o the_o gospel_n now_o for_o his_o own_o opinion_n he_o express_v it_o in_o these_o term_n 58._o that_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n be_v real_o &_o true_o in_o the_o sacrament_n in_o his_o
in_o all_o matter_n of_o religion_n he_o agree_v full_o with_o the_o catholic_a roman_a church_n pro._n what_o his_o religion_n be_v let_v his_o own_o work_n testify_v guicci●rdine_n say_v 94._o that_o amongst_o other_o thing_n h●e_v be_v charge_v that_o his_o doctrine_n be_v not_o full_o catholic_a he_o mean_v roman_a catholic_a and_o comminees_n say_v 5._o that_o one_o of_o the_o friar_n minorite_n his_o profess_a adversary_n charge_v he_o to_o be_v a_o heretic_n so_o that_o in_o his_o opinion_n he_o be_v not_o in_o each_o point_n a_o roman_a catholic_a and_o to_o take_v the_o pope_n process_n which_o be_v publish_v against_o he_o as_o we_o find_v it_o in_o guicciardine_n therein_o it_o be_v give_v out_o that_o savonarola_n have_v a_o holy_a desire_n 95._o that_o by_o his_o mean_n a_o general_n council_n may_v be_v call_v wherein_o the_o corrupt_a custom_n of_o the_o clergy_n may_v be_v reform_v and_o the_o estate_n of_o the_o church_n of_o god_n so_o far_o wander_v and_o go_v astray_o may_v be_v reduce_v so_o far_o forth_o as_o be_v possible_a to_o the_o likeness_n of_o that_o it_o be_v in_o the_o apostle_n time_n or_o those_o that_o be_v near_a unto_o they_o and_o if_o he_o can_v bring_v so_o great_a and_o so_o profitable_a a_o work_n to_o effect_v he_o will_v think_v it_o a_o far_o great_a glory_n then_o to_o obtain_v the_o popedom_n it_o s●lfe_o in_o the_o same_o process_n it_o be_v contain_v 95._o how_o he_o despise_v the_o pope_n commandment_n and_o return_v public_o to_o his_o ol●_n office_n of_o preach_v affirm_v that_o the_o pope_n censure_v publish_v against_o he_o be_v unjust_a and_o of_o no_o force_n as_o also_o that_o the_o matter_n by_o he_o prophesy_v be_v not_o pronounce_v by_o divine_a revelation_n but_o by_o his_o proper_a opinion_n ground_v upon_o the_o doctrine_n and_o observation_n of_o holy_a scripture_n and_o now_o let_v the_o reader_n consider_v by_o that_o which_o guicciardine_n report_v of_o savonarola_n and_o namely_o touch_v the_o opinion_n he_o have_v of_o the_o pope_n authority_n and_o his_o excommunication_n touch_v general_a counsel_n and_o the_o deformity_n and_o degeneration_n of_o the_o church_n state_n in_o respect_n of_o antiquity_n as_o also_o what_o comminees_n say_v of_o his_o preach_n of_o the_o reformation_n of_o the_o church_n and_o that_o by_o the_o sword_n as_o former_o our_o grosthead_n bishop_n of_o lincoln_n foretell_v and_o then_o let_v he_o judge_v of_o what_o profession_n he_o be_v likely_a to_o be_v now_o for_o the_o point_n of_o faction_n and_o sedition_n it_o be_v true_a indeed_o that_o there_o be_v a_o great_a faction_n in_o florence_n not_o only_o among_o the_o laity_n but_o the_o spiritualty_n al●o_o but_o it_o do_v not_o appear_v that_o hierome_n be_v the_o author_n or_o nourisher_n of_o this_o discord_n or_o that_o he_o have_v any_o hand_n in_o that_o tumult_n 95._o wherein_o francisco_n valori_n a_o principal_a favourer_n of_o savonarola_n be_v slay_v when_o saint_n paul_n preach_v the_o gospel_n in_o asia_n the_o whole_a city_n of_o eph●sus_n be_v full_a of_o confusion_n and_o they_o rush_v into_o the_o common_a place_n and_o catch_v gajus_n and_o aristarchus_n paul_n companion_n of_o his_o journey_n act._n 19_o ver_fw-la 29._o be_v paul_n or_o his_o companion_n the_o occasion_n of_o this_o tumult_n savonarola_n preach_v the_o word_n of_o god_n in_o florence_n his_o adversary_n take_v arm_n enter_v the_o monastery_n of_o saint_n mark_v where_o he_o be_v and_o draw_v he_o and_o two_o of_o his_o brethren_n dominick_n and_o silvester_n out_o of_o the_o covent_n and_o put_v they_o into_o the_o common_a prison_n upon_o occasion_n of_o a_o mutiny_n in_o the_o city_n but_o hierome_n and_o his_o f●llowes_n occasion_v not_o this_o tumult_n it_o be_v indeed_o p●●tended_v tha●_n he_o side_v with_o the_o one_o faction_n in_o florence_n but_z philip_z de_z comminees_n who_o know_v he_o better_o than_o ●_z touch_v that_o which_o bring_v the_o fr●er_n to_o the_o s●ake_v name_o in_o that_o he_o prophesy_v and_o that_o so_o vehement_o and_o free_o of_o the_o come_n in_o of_o foreign_a force_n and_o of_o a_o king_n that_o by_o force_n of_o arm_n shall_v reform_v the_o corrupt_a state_n of_o the_o church_n and_o chastise_v the_o tyrant_n of_o su●●à_fw-la italy_n this_o be_v it_o say_v he_o which_o make_v the_o pope_n and_o the_o state_n of_o florence_n hate_v he_o thus_o have_v we_o hear_v of_o his_o life_n and_o death_n there_o remain_v nothing_o now_o but_o his_o epitaph_n wherewith_o flaminius_n a_o famous_a poet_n of_o italy_n have_v honour_v he_o and_o thus_o it_o be_v dum_fw-la fera_fw-fr fla●ma_fw-la tuos_fw-la hieronyme_n pascitur_fw-la artus_fw-la religio_fw-la flevit_fw-la dilani●ta_fw-la comas_fw-la flevit_fw-la et_fw-la o_o dixit_fw-la crudeles_fw-la parcite_fw-la flammae_fw-la pa●ite_fw-la sunt_fw-la isto_fw-la viscera_fw-la nostra_fw-la rogo_fw-la that_o be_v while_o hi●rome_n to_o the_o fiery_a stake_n be_v lead_v religion_n tear_v her_o hair_n and_o weep_v and_o say_v you_o cruel_a flame_n oh_o spare_v this_o tender_a heart_n for_o while_o he_o burn_v religion_n feel_v the_o smart_n and_o so_o i_o proceed_v to_o the_o several_a point_n in_o question_n of_o the_o scripture_n sufficiency_n and_o canon_n ge●son_n op●r_n make_v the_o word_n of_o christ_n the_o sole_a authentical_a ground_n of_o faith_n and_o the_o only_a infallible_a rule_n to_o decide_v controversy_n the_o scripture_n say_v he_o 1._o be_v give_v unto_o we_o as_o a_o sufficient_a and_o infallible_a rule_n for_o the_o government_n of_o the_o whole_a body_n of_o ●he_n church_n and_o each_o part_n thereof_o unto_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n what_o evil_a say_v the_o same_o gerson_n 1_o have_v follow_v upon_o the_o contempt_n of_o holy_a scripture_n which_o doubtless_o be_v sufficient_a for_o the_o government_n of_o the_o church_n for_o otherwise_o christ_n have_v be_v a_o unperfect_a law_n give●_n experience_n will_v teach_v that_o wickliff_n affirm_v that_o neither_o friar_n nor_o prelate_n may_v define_v a●y_a thing_n in_o matter_n of_o faith_n unless_o they_o have_v the_o authority_n of_o sacred_a scripture_n or_o some_o special_a revelation_n i_o dislike_v not_o say_v waldensis_n 1._o but_o his_o waywardnesse_n and_o craft_n i_o condemn_v and_o think_v it_o necessary_a lest_o we_o wrest_v the_o scripture_n and_o err_v in_o the_o interpretation_n of_o they_o to_o follow_v the_o tradition_n of_o the_o church_n expound_v they_o unto_o we_o and_o not_o to_o trust_v to_o our_o own_o private_a &_o singular_a conceit_n this_o be_v that_o which_o vincentius_n lirinensis_n long_o since_o deliver_v alphonsus_n tostatus_n say_v 2._o although_o the_o book_n in_o question_n be_v receive_v of_o the_o church_n yet_o be_v th●y_v not_o of_o any_o solid_a authority_n and_o therefore_o they_o be_v improfitable_a to_o prove_v and_o confirm_v those_o thing_n which_o be_v call_v in_o question_n according_a to_o saint_n hierome_n thomas_n waldensis_n cite_v out_o of_o hierome_n the_o can●n_n of_o the_o old_a testament_n in_o these_o word_n initium_fw-la as_o there_o be_v tw●nty_o two_o letter_n by_o which_o we_o write_v in_o hebrew_n all_o that_o we_o speak_v so_o there_o be_v account_v twenty_o two_o book_n by_o which_o as_o letter_n we_o be_v instruct_v in_o the_o doctrine_n of_o god_n and_o withal_o add_v that_o the_o whole_a canonical_a scripture_n be_v contain_v in_o the_o two_o and_o twenty_o book_n dionysius_n carthusi●nus_n in_o write_v upon_o ecclesiasticus_fw-la say_v ecclesiast_n that_o book_n be_v not_o of_o the_o conon_n that_o be_v among_o the_o canonical_a scripture_n although_o there_o be_v no_o doubt_n make_v of_o the_o truth_n of_o that_o book_n this_o be_v likewise_o confess_v by_o pererius_n the_o jesuite_n say_v mit_fw-fr dionysius_n carthusianus_n and_o lyra_n do_v not_o deny_v the_o history_n of_o susanna_n to_o be_v true_a but_o they_o deny_v the_o book_n of_o judith_n tobit_n and_o the_o maccabee_n to_o apertaine_v to_o the_o cononicall_a scripture_n and_o the_o like_a observation_n touch_v lyra_n be_v make_v by_o picus_n mirandula_n and_o 2._o picus_n himself_o will_v have_v we_o note_v that_o many_o thing_n which_o in_o the_o decree_n be_v reckon_v for_o apocryphal_a and_o so_o account_v by_o hierome_n be_v nevertheless_o read_v in_o the_o divine_a service_n and_o many_o thing_n also_o which_o some_o hold_v not_o to_o be_v tru●_n of_o communion_n under_o both_o kind_n and_o number_n of_o sacrament_n the_o council_n of_o constance_n do_v not_o simple_o forbid_v the_o minister_a of_o the_o sacrament_n in_o both_o kind_n but_o the_o teach_n of_o the_o people_n that_o of_o necessity_n it_o must_v be_v so_o minister_v for_o so_o we_o find_v in_o the_o thirteen_o session_n of_o the_o say_a council_n 13_o that_o if_o any_o shall_v obstinate_o maintain_v that_o it_o be_v unlawful_a or_o erroneous_a to_o receive_v in_o one_o kind_n he_o ought_v to_o be_v punish_v
say_n of_o ernestus_n archbishop_n of_o magdeburg_n lie_v on_o his_o deathbed_n 1512._o some_o five_o year_n before_o luther_n show_v himself_o rely_v it_o be_v witness_v by_o clement_n scha●_n chaplain_n to_o the_o say_a archbishop_n and_o one_o who_o be_v present_a at_o his_o death_n that_o a_o friar_n minor_n use_v this_o speech_n to_o the_o archbishop_n take_v a_o good_a heart_n most_o worthy_a prince_n we_o communicate_v to_o your_o excellency_n all_o the_o good_a work_n not_o only_o of_o ourselves_o but_o our_o whole_a order_n of_o friar_n minor_n and_o therefore_o doubt_v not_o but_o you_o receive_v they_o shall_v appear_v before_o the_o tribunal_n seat_n of_o god_n righteous_a and_o bless_a whereunto_o the_o archbishop_n reply_v by_o no_o mean_n will_v i_o trust_v upon_o my_o own_o work_n or_o you_o but_o the_o work_n of_o christ_n jesus_n alone_o shall_v suffice_v upon_o they_o will_v i_o repose_v myself_o the_o sixteen_o centurie_n from_o the_o year_n of_o grace_n 1500._o to_o 1600._o of_o martin_n luther_n papist_n what_o say_v you_o of_o this_o sixteen_o age_n protestant_n we_o be_v now_o by_o god_n assistance_n come_v to_o the_o period_n of_o time_n which_o be_v agree_v upon_o in_o the_o begin_n of_o our_o conference_n to_o wit_n to_o the_o day_n of_o martin_n luther_n for_o about_o the_o year_n of_o grace_n 1517_o he_o begin_v to_o teach_v and_o preach_v against_o indulgence_n and_o withal_o i_o have_v produce_v a_o catalogue_n of_o our_o professor_n unto_o this_o present_a sixteen_o centurie_n pa._n stay_v yourself_o you_o must_v say_v master_n 3._o brere_o show_v we_o your_o professor_n during_o the_o twenty_o year_n next_o before_o luther_n pro._n it_o be_v do_v already_o for_o beside_o our_o english_a martyr_n we_o have_v produce_v trithemius_n the_o abbot_n and_o savonarola_n both_o which_o live_v within_o the_o time_n mention_v and_o hold_v with_o we_o the_o article_n of_o free_a justification_n and_o savonarola_n howsoever_o the_o matter_n be_v otherwise_o colour_v be_v burn_v for_o religion_n in_o the_o year_n 1498._o beside_o there_o have_v be_v in_o all_o age_n and_o in_o the_o time_n mention_v such_o as_o hold_v the_o substantial_a article_n of_o our_o religion_n both_o in_o the_o roman_a and_o greek_a church_n and_o by_o name_n the_o grecian_n in_o common_a with_o we_o have_v open_o deny_v the_o pope_n supremacy_n purgatory_n private_a mass_n sacrifice_n for_o the_o dead_a and_o defend_v the_o lawfulness_n of_o priest_n marriage_n likewise_o in_o this_o western_a part_n of_o the_o world_n the_o scholar_n of_o wickliff_n call_v lollard_n in_o england_n the_o tabo●ites_n in_o bohemia_n and_o waldenses_n in_o france_n maintain_v the_o same_o doctrine_n in_o substance_n with_o our_o modern_a protestant_n as_o appear_v by_o a_o confession_n of_o the_o waldensian_a faith_n set_v forth_o 87._o about_o the_o year_n of_o grace_n 1508_o which_o be_v within_o the_o time_n prefix_v neither_o do_v these_o who_o we_o have_v produce_v dissemble_v their_o religion_n but_o make_v open_a profession_n thereof_o by_o their_o write_n confession_n and_o martyrdom_n as_o also_o their_o just_a apology_n be_v extant_a 812._o to_o clear_v they_o from_o the_o adversary_n imputation_n pa._n i_o think_v luther_n have_v be_v the_o first_o founder_n of_o your_o religion_n for_o there_o be_v some_o of_o your_o man_n who_o call_v 11._o he_o the_o first_o apostle_n of_o the_o reform_a doctrine_n pro._n luther_n broach_v not_o a_o new_a religion_n he_o only_o drain_v and_o refine_v it_o from_o the_o lees_n and_o dregs_n of_o superstition_n he_o do_v not_o form_n or_o find_v a_o new_a church_n which_o be_v not_o in_o be_v but_o only_o reform_v and_o purge_v that_o which_o he_o find_v from_o the_o soil●_n of_o error_n and_o disorder_n when_o hilkiah_n the_o priest_n in_o iosiah_n time_n 22_o find_v out_o the_o book_n of_o god_n he_o be_v thereby_o a_o mean_n to_o bring_v to_o light_v what_o the_o wicked_a proceed_n of_o manasses_n amon_n and_o other_o have_v for_o a_o season_n smother_v and_o so_o do_v luther_n he_o be_v the_o instrument_n who_o god_n use_v for_o the_o far_o enlighten_v his_o church_n and_o yet_o hereupon_o it_o no_o more_o follow_v that_o he_o be_v the_o first_o that_o preach_v our_o religion_n than_o upon_o the_o former_a that_o hi●kiah_n first_o preach_v the_o law_n the_o protestant_n church_n by_o luther_n mean_n begin_v no_o otherwise_o in_o germany_n than_o health_n begin_v to_o be_v in_o a_o body_n that_o be_v former_o sick_a and_o overcharge_v and_o now_o recover_v so_o that_o in_o respect_n of_o doctrine_n necessary_a to_o salvation_n the_o church_n in_o her_o firm_a member_n as_o saint_n austin_n speak_v ibid._n be_v the_o same_o before_o luther_n and_o afterward_o and_o it_o begin_v to_o be_v by_o his_o mean_n only_o according_a to_o a_o grea●er_a measure_n of_o knowledge_n and_o freedom_n from_o such_o corruption_n as_o former_o like_o ill_a humour_n oppress_v it_o and_o overcharge_v it_o the_o protestant's_n church_n than_o be_v the_o same_o with_o all_o good_a and_o sound_a christian_n that_o live_v before_o they_o and_o succee_v the_o sound_a member_n of_o the_o visible_a church_n that_o keep_v the_o life_n of_o true_a religion_n in_o the_o substantial_a matter_n of_o faith_n and_o godliness_n though_o otherwise_o those_o time_n be_v darken_v with_o a_o thick_a mist_n of_o error_n now_o whereas_o some_o call_v luther_n the_o first_o apostle_n of_o the_o reform_a doctrine_n they_o do_v not_o thereby_o intend_v that_o he_o be_v the_o fi●st_n that_o ever_o preach_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o reform_a church_n for_o they_o can_v not_o be_v ignorant_a that_o after_o christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n and_o the_o father_n of_o the_o first_o five_o age_n bertram_n and_o a●lfricke_n and_o berenger_n peter_n bruis_n and_o henry_n of_o tholouse_n dulcinus_n and_o an●ldus_n and_o lollardus_n wickliff_n husse_n hierome_n of_o prag●e_n and_o other_o stand_v for_o the_o same_o truth_n which_o we_o profess_v but_o their_o meaning_n be_v that_o luther_n be_v the_o first_o who_o in_o their_o age_n and_o memory_n public_o and_o successful_o set_v on_o foot_n a_o general_a reformation_n of_o the_o church_n in_o these_o western_a part_n and_o thus_o in_o a_o tolerable_a sense_n luther_n may_v be_v call_v the_o first_o apostle_n of_o the_o reformation_n though_o not_o simple_o the_o first_o that_o preach_v the_o protestant_n doctrine_n americus_n vesputius_n be_v chronolog_n report_v to_o have_v discover_v the_o west_n indies_n or_o america_n and_o withal_o bear_v the_o name_n thereof_o and_o yet_o christopher_n columbus_n discover_v it_o before_o he_o bishop_n jewel_n say_v 2._o that_o in_o luther_n day_n in_o the_o midst_n of_o the_o darkness_n of_o that_o age_n there_o first_o begin_v to_o shine_v some_o glimmer_a beam_n of_o truth_n his_o meaning_n be_v not_o that_o the_o truth_n be_v then_o first_o reveal_v but_o that_o by_o luther_n m●anes_n it_o be_v manifest_v in_o a_o full_a measure_n and_o degree_n of_o l●ght_n and_o knowledge_n than_o it_o be_v in_o the_o f●rmer_a and_o dank_a time_n of_o popery_n yea_o he_o give_v particular_a instance_n of_o true_a professor_n that_o be_v before_o luther_n namely_o saint_n hilary_n gregory_n bernard_n pauperes_fw-la de_fw-fr lugduno_n the_o ●ishops_n of_o greece_n and_o asia_n as_o also_o 411._o valla_n marsilius_n petrarch_n savonarola_n and_o other_o pa._n do_v luther_n himself_o acknowledge_v he_o have_v any_o predecessor_n or_o forerunner_n pro._n i_o answer_v with_o my_o worthy_a and_o learned_a friend_n doctor_n feat_o answer_n that_o luther_n acknowledge_v the_o waldenses_n term_v fratres_fw-la pigardi_fw-la as_o appear_v by_o his_o preface_n before_o the_o waldension_n confession_n i_o find_v say_v he_o in_o these_o man_n a_o miracle_n almost_o unheard_a of_o in_o the_o popish_a church_n to_o wit_n that_o these_o man_n leave_v the_o doctrine_n of_o man_n to_o the_o utmost_a of_o their_o endeavour_n meditate_a in_o the_o law_n of_o god_n day_n and_o night_n and_o be_v very_o ready_a and_o skilful_a in_o the_o scripture_n whereas_o in_o the_o papacy_n the_o great_a clerk_n utter_o neglect_v the_o scripture_n i_o can_v not_o but_o congratulate_v both_o they_o and_o we_o that_o we_o be_v together_o bring_v into_o one_o sheepfold_n of_o john_n husse_n and_o hi●rome_n of_o prague_n he_o say_v ruddock_n they_o burn_v john_n husse_v and_o hierome_n both_o catholic_a man_n they_o be_v themselves_o heretic_n and_o apostate_n and_o in_o his_o three_o preface_n he_o say_v he_o have_v hear_v from_o man_n of_o credit_n that_o maximilian_n the_o emperor_n be_v wont_a to_o say_v of_o john_n husse_n alas_o alas_o they_o do_v that_o good_a man_n wrong_v and_o erasmus_n roterodam_n in_o the_o first_o book_n which_o he_o print_v lie_v yet_o by_o i_o write_v esse_fw-la that_o husse_n indeed_o be_v condemn_v and_o burn_v but_o not_o convict_v pa._n to_o
mass_n wherein_o the_o priest_n alone_a do_v communicate_v without_o the_o people_n it_o be_v contra●y_o to_o ●he_v canon_n of_o ●he_n m●sse_n say_v in_o the_o plural_a number_n sumpsimus_fw-la we_o have_v ●ec●ived_v cano●●_n an●_n quo●quot_fw-la ex_fw-la hoc_fw-la altaris_fw-la participatione_fw-la etc._n etc._n that_o all_o we_o which_o in_o ●he_n participation_n of_o the_o altar_n have_v receiu●d_v the_o sacred_a body_n and_o blood_n of_o t●y_n sonne●_n etc._n etc._n john_n hossme●ster_n a_o learned_a man_n expound_v the_o prayer_n of_o th●_n mass●_n have_v these_o w●rds_n m●ss●●_n the_o thing_n it_o s●lfe_o proclaim_v it_o th●t_v as_o w●ll_n in_o the_o gre●ke_n as_o latin_a church_n not_o only_o the_o priest_n which_o sacrif●●eth_v but_o the_o other_o priest_n and_o deacon_n also_o yea_o and_o the_o people_n or_o at_o le●st_a some_o part_n of_o they_o do_v communicate_v which_o custom_n how_o it_o grow_v out_o of_o use_n i_o know_v not_o but_o sure_o we_o shall_v labour_v to_o bring_v it_o in_o again_o by_o this_o it_o appear_v that_o the_o priest_n receive_v alone_o and_o the_o neglect_v or_o exclude_v the_o communicate_v of_o other_o as_o no●_n much_o necessary_a be_v indeed_o a_o point_n of_o romish_a religion_n but_o contrary_a to_o the_o word_n of_o the_o canon_n and_o ●he_v ancient_a custom_n of_o the_o church_n it_o proceed_v from_o the_o indevotion_n of_o the_o people_n or_o rather_o ●he_v negligence_n or_o error_n of_o the_o guide_v of_o ●he_n church_n that_o either_o fail_v to_o stir_v they_o up_o to_o the_o performance_n of_o such_o a_o duty_n or_o make_v they_o bel●eve_v their_o act_n w●s_v sufficient_a to_o communicate_v the_o benefit_n of_o christ_n passion_n to_o th●m_n but_o this_o course_n be_v mislike_v by_o they_o of_o the_o bet●er_a sort_n concern_v communion_n in_o one_o kind_n that_o be_v another_o point_n of_o romish_a religion_n suppose_v to_o be_v contain_v in_o the_o mass_n which_o yet_o wan●s_v the_o like_n and_o approbation_n of_o the_o best_a and_o worthy_a guide_n of_o god_n church_n then_o live_v specie_fw-la cassander_n say_v it_o be_v sufficient_o manifest_a that_o the_o ●niversall_a church_n of_o christ_n until_o this_o day_n and_o the_o western_a or_o roman_a church_n for_o more_o than_o a_o thousand_o year_n after_o christ_n do_v minister_v the_o sacrament_n in_o both_o kind_n to_o all_o the_o member_n of_o christ_n church_n at_o least_o in_o public_a as_o it_o be_v most_o evident_a by_o innumerable_a testimony_n both_o of_o gre●ke_n and_o latin_a father_n it_o be_v true_a indeed_o ●hat_n in_o case_n of_o necessity_n as_o when_o child_n or_o such_o as_o be_v sick_a and_o weak_a be_v to_o ●eceive_v the_o communion_n th●y_o use_v to_o ●ip_v the_o mystical_a bread_n into_o the_o consecrate_a wine_n under_o pre●en●e_n of_o ca●efull_n avoid_v the_o danger_n of_o spill_v it_o and_o great_a reverence_n towards_o the_o holy_a sacrament_n from_o this_o customs_n wh●●●_n yet_o be_v ●isl●ked_v as_o appear_v by_o hildebe●●_n 〈…〉_z 1618._o some_o procee_v far_a and_o begin_v to_o teach_v the_o people_n that_o see_v the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n can_v be_v separate_v in_o that_o they_o partake_v of_o the_o 〈◊〉_d they_o partake_v of_o the_o other_o also_o and_o that_o therefore_o it_o be_v sufficient_a to_o receive_v in_o one_o kind_n alone_o n●●th●r_a y●t_n can_v this_o give_v satisfaction_n for_o howsoever_o the_o custom_n of_o communicate_v under_o one_o kind_n prevail_v yet_o there_o want_v not_o such_o as_o sufficient_o express_v their_o judgement_n that_o communicate_v in_o both_o kind_n as_o christ_n first_o do_v institute_v and_o the_o church_n for_o a_o long_a time_n observe_v be_v fit_a and_o convenient_a perfect_a and_o complete_a and_o of_o more_o efficacy_n and_o clear_a representation_n than_o the_o other_o under_o one_o kind_n alone_o come_v to_o another_o main_a point_n the_o proper_a and_o propitiatory_a sacrifice_n for_o the_o quick_a and_o the_o dead_a and_o see_v whether_o at_o luther_n appear_v before_o and_o after_o all_o that_o use_v that_o liturgy_n have_v such_o a_o opinion_n of_o a_o sacrifice_n saint_n 10._o ambrose_n and_o saint_n chrysostome_n 17._o by_o way_n of_o correction_n say_v we_o offer_v the_o same_o sacrifice_n or_o rather_o the_o remembrance_n thereof_o peter_n lombard_n propose_v the_o question_n whether_o that_o which_o the_o priest_n do_v may_v proper_o be_v name_v a_o sacrifice_n or_o immolation_n answer_v ●●_o that_o christ_n be_v only_o once_o true_o and_o proper_o offer_v in_o sacrifice_n and_o that_o h●e_v be_v not_o proper_o immolate_a or_o sacrifice_v but_o in_o sacrament_n and_o representation_n only_o lyra_n say_v ca._n that_o if_o thou_o say_v the_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o altar_n be_v daily_o offer_v in_o the_o church_n it_o must_v be_v answer_v that_o th●re_o be_v no_o reiteration_n of_o the_o sacrifice_n but_o a_o daily_a commemoration_n of_o that_o sacrifice_n that_o be_v once_o offer_v on_o the_o crosse._n georgius_n wi●elius_n a_o man_n much_o honour_v by_o the_o emperor_n ferdinand_n and_o maximilian_n field_n define_v the_o mass_n to_o be_v a_o sacrifice_n rememorative_n and_o of_o praise_n and_o thanksgiving_n where_o many_o give_v thanks_n for_o the_o price_n of_o their_o redemption_n the_o author_n of_o the_o enchiridion_n of_o christian_a religion_n publish_v in_o the_o provincial_a council_n of_o colen_n say_v coa●m_n in_o that_o the_o church_n do_v offer_v the_o true_a body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n to_o god_n the_o father_n it_o be_v mere_o a_o representative_a sacrifice_n and_o all_o that_o be_v don●_n be_v but_o the_o commemorate_n and_o represent_v of_o that_o sacrifice_n which_o be_v once_o offer_v on_o the_o crosse._n by_o that_o which_o have_v be_v say_v it_o be_v clear_a that_o the_o best_a and_o worthy_a guide_n of_o god_n church_n both_o before_o and_o after_o luther_n time_n teach_v not_o any_o new_a real_a offering_n of_o christ_n to_o god_n the_o father_n as_o a_o propitiatory_a sacrifice_n to_o take_v away_o sin_n but_o in_o effect_n as_o we_o do_v namely_o that_o the_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o altar_n be_v only_o the_o sacrifice_n of_o praise_n and_o thanksgiving_n and_o a_o mere_a representation_n and_o commemoration_n of_o the_o sacrifice_n once_o offer_v upon_o the_o cross_n his_o be_v the_o real_a sacrifice_n on_o the_o cross_n we_o only_o the_o sacramental_a representation_n commemoration_n and_o application_n thereof_o so_o that_o christ_n be_v not_o new_o offer_v any_o otherwise_o than_o in_o that_o he_o be_v offer_v in_o the_o view_n of_o god_n nor_o any_o otherwise_o sacrifice_v than_o in_o that_o his_o sacrifice_n on_o the_o cross_n be_v commemorate_a and_o represent_v and_o thus_o the_o father_n term_v the_o holy_a eucharist_n a_o unbloody_a sacrifice_n not_o because_o christ_n be_v proper_o and_o in_o his_o substance_n offer_v therein_o but_o because_o his_o bloody_a sacrifice_n upon_o the_o cross_n be_v by_o this_o unbloody_a commemoration_n represent_v call_v to_o remembrance_n and_o apply_v beside_o these_o point_n mention_v i_o have_v already_o produce_v witness_n in_o all_o age_n and_o in_o all_o part_n of_o the_o world_n reject_v those_o book_n as_o apocryphal_a that_o we_o do_v and_o show_v that_o even_o until_o luther_n time_n the_o church_n do_v not_o admit_v the_o canon_n of_o scripture_n which_o the_o romanist_n now_o do_v nor_o ever_o account_v those_o book_n canonical_a which_o we_o think_v to_o be_v apocryphal_a and_o by_o these_o instance_n it_o may_v appear_v that_o all_o be_v not_o papist_n who_o hold_v with_o the_o mass_n th●_n thing_n than_o we_o say_v be_v this_o that_o though_o the_o mass_n be_v general_o in_o u●e_v at_o ●nd_v b●fore_o luther_n time●_n yet_o diver●_n point_v belong_v thereunto_o be_v not_o believe_v by_o t●e_v worthy_a guide_n in_o god_n church_n at_o and_o before_o luther_n time_n though_o indeed_o there_o be_v some_o in_o the_o church_n ●hat_n so_o conceive_v of_o they_o as_o the_o romanist_n now_o do_v and_o the_o reason_n hereof_o be_v this_o they_o be_v not_o general_o receive_v by_o all_o m●n_z nor_o as_o the_o undoubted_a determination_n of_o the_o church_n not_o as_o dogmata_fw-la fidei_fw-la but_o dogmata_fw-la scholae_fw-la controvert_v and_o diverse_o dispute_v among_o the_o learned_a &_o hold_v with_o great_a liberty_n of_o judgement_n by_o the_o great_a doctor_n as_o appear_v by_o their_o own_o book_n of_o controversy_n write_v by_o bellarmine_n sua●ez_n azorius_fw-la and_o other_o which_o confute_v their_o own_o writer_n almost_o as_o much_o as_o they_o do_v protestant's_n beside_o have_v they_o be_v the_o undoubted_a doctrine_n and_o determination_n of_o the_o church_n all_o man_n will_v have_v hold_v they_o uniform_o entire_o and_o constant_o 11._o as_o they_o hold_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o trinity_n the_o creation_n the_o incarnation_n of_o the_o son_n of_o god_n and_o other_o article_n of_o the_o faith_n objection_n if_o these_o point_n
minister_n to_o marry_v in_o divers_a other_o point_n also_o many_o of_o your_o side_n say_v the_o same_o with_o the_o protestant_n as_o it_o be_v already_o show_v in_o this_o treatise_n and_o therefore_o if_o you_o will_v force_v the_o argument_n to_o make_v that_o the_o safe_a way_n of_o salvation_n which_o differ_v part_n agree_v upon_o why_o do_v you_o not_o join_v with_o u●_n since_o for_o the_o positive_a and_o affirmative_a article_n of_o our_o religion_n no●_n only_o the_o m●st_n but_o al●_n pr●t●stant_n and_o pap●●●_n ag●e●_n therein_o for_o example_n s●ke_v 85._o we_o agree_v on_o bo●h_a side_n the_o scripture_n to_o be_v the_o r●le_n of_o faith_n the_o book_n of_o the_o old_a testament_n write_v in_o hebrew_a to_o be_v canonical_a that_o we_o be_v justify_v by_o faith_n that_o god_n have_v make_v two_o receptacl●s_n for_o man_n s●●les_n aft●r_v death_n heaven_n and_o hell_n that_o god_n may_v ●e_v worship_v in_o spirit_n without_o a_o image_n tha●_n we_o be_v ●o_o pray_v unto_o god_n by_o christ_n that_o there_o be_v two_o sacrament_n that_o christ_n be_v real_o receive_v in_o the_o lord_n su●per_v that_o christ_n make_v one_o oblation_n of_o himself_o upon_o the_o cross_n for_o the_o redemption_n propitiation_n and_o satisfaction_n for_o the_o sin_n of_o the_o whole_a world_n in_o a_o word_n where_o they_o take_v the_o negative_a part_n as_o in_o withhold_a the_o cup_n from_o the_o lai●ie_n forbid_v the_o administration_n of_o the_o sacrament_n in_o the_o vulgar_a tongue_n and_o restrain_v the_o marriage_n o●_n priest_n yet_o even_o in_o th●se_a they_o condescend_v unto_o u●_n for_o t●e_v lawfulness_n of_o the_o thing_n in_o themselves_o and_o in_o respect_n of_o the_o law_n of_o god_n an●_n oppose_v they_o only_o in_o rega●d_n of_o their_o conveniency_n and_o for_o that_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n have_v otherwise_o ordain_v but_o see_v our_o ●ffi●mations_n content_v they_o not_o to_o the_o scripture_n the●_n add●_n and_o equalise_v unwritten_a tradition_n to_o ●he_n hebr●w_n canon_n the_o apocrypha_fw-la to_o faith_n in_o the_o act_n of_o justification_n work_n to_o heaven_n and_o hell_n purgatory_n limbus_n patrum_fw-la and_o limbus_n puero●um_n to_o the_o worship_n of_o god_n in_o spirit_n image_n to_o prayer_n to_o god_n by_o chri●t_n invocation_n and_o intercession_n of_o s●in●s_n to_o baptism_n and_o ●he_n lord_n supper_n five_o other_o sacrament_n to_o the_o reality_n of_o christ_n in_o the_o sacrament_n his_o corporal_a presence_n to_o t●e_v sacrifice_n of_o ch●ist_n upon_o the_o cros●e_n ●he_v sacrifice_n in_o t●e_v mass_n wit●_n other_o like_a and_o these_o we_o deny_v as_o be_v corrupt_a addition_n to_o the_o faith_n these_o be_v our_o ground_n wherein_o we_o enter-common_a with_o they_o and_o these_o be_v their_o addition_n and_o improvement_n which_o they_o have_v raise_v and_o enclose_v upon_o the_o lord_n freehold_a let_v we_o brief_o survey_v they_o both_o bell●●m●ne_n be_v confid●nt_a that_o the_o apostle_n never_o use_v to_o preach_v open_o to_o the_o people_n other_o thing_n than_o the_o article_n of_o the_o apostle_n creed_n the_o ten_o comman●●m●nts_n and_o some_o of_o the_o sacrament_n because_o say_v he_o primum_fw-la these_o be_v simple_o necessary_a and_o profitable_a for_o all_o man_n the_o rest_n beside_o such_o as_o that_o a_o man_n may_v be_v save_v without_o they_o if_o one_o worship_v god_n without_o a_o image_n they_o will_v not_o deny_v but_o that_o this_o spiritual_a worship_n be_v acceptable_a to_o god_n if_o one_o call_v upon_o god_n alone_o by_o the_o only_a mediation_n of_o christ_n they_o will_v not_o say_v that_o this_o devotion_n be_v fruitless_a if_o one_o say_v the_o lord_n prayer_n or_o other_o devotion_n in_o the_o vulgar_a tongue_n they_o will_v not_o deny_v but_o that_o such_o prayer_n as_o a●e_v make_v with_o understanding_n and_o in_o a_o know_a language_n may_v be_v fruitful_a and_o effectual_a for_o lyra_n say_v 14._o that_o if_o the_o people_n understand_v the_o prayer_n of_o the_o priest_n they_o be_v better_o bring_v to_o the_o knowledge_n of_o god_n and_o they_o answer_v amen_o with_o great_a devotion_n cardinal_n cajetan_n who_o have_v often_o perform_v the_o public_a service_n in_o a_o unknown_a tongue_n in_o the_o church_n yet_o contrary_a to_o his_o practice_n profess_v 17._o it_o be_v better_a by_o saint_n paul_n doctrine_n for_o the_o edify_n of_o the_o church_n that_o public_a prayer_n be_v make_v in_o a_o vulgar_a tongue_n to_o be_v understand_v indifferent_o by_o priest_n and_o people_n ●han_o in_o latin_a if_o a_o man_n receive_v the_o sacrament_n in_o both_o kind_n they_o will_v not_o i_o suppose_v deny_v but_o that_o it_o be_v very_o comfortable_a to_o receive_v bo●h_a p●rts_n o●_n the_o eucharist_n alexander_n of_o hales_n the_o first_o and_o great_a of_o all_o the_o school_n m●n_z pr●fesse●h_o 1._o that_o though_o the_o order_n of_o receive_v in_o one_o ki●d_a b●_n sufficient_a yet_o the_o order_n of_o both_o kind_n be_v of_o mor●_n merit_n for_o increase_v of_o devotion_n and_o faith_n if_o o●e_o perform_v the_o best_a wo●kes_n he_o can_v which_o we_o also_o require_v and_o stand_v not_o upon_o the_o point_n of_o merit_n but_o only_o upon_o the_o mercy_n of_o god_n as_o we_o do_v this_o likewise_o serve_v to_o justify_v our_o doctrine_n for_o they_o themselves_o hold_v it_o a_o man_n safe_a course_n si●_n not_o to_o trust_v to_o his_o own_o merit_n but_o whole_o and_o sole_o to_o cast_v himself_o on_o the_o m●rcy_n of_o god_n in_o jesus_n christ._n now_o this_o justify_v our_o religion_n and_o show_v that_o it_o be_v sufficient_a to_o salvation_n in_o as_o much_o as_o the_o ground_n thereof_o set_v aside_o the_o matter_n in_o question_n between_o we_o be_v full_o able_a to_o instruct_v a_o man_n in_o all_o point_v necessary_a to_o his_o salvation_n both_o how_o to_o live_v religious_o and_o to_o die_v comfortable_o hence_o also_o it_o follow_v that_o by_o their_o own_o confession_n the_o controvert_v point_n be_v unnecessary_a and_o superfluous_a in_o as_o much_o as_o a_o man_n may_v be_v save_v who_o neither_o know_v nor_o believe_v nor_o practice_n these_o addition_n and_o excess_n of_o they_o object_n you_o talk_v of_o our_o excess_n and_o conceal_v your_o own_o defect_n now_o as_o the_o archbishop_n of_o spalleto_n say_v 12._o heresy_n consist_v in_o the_o defect_n not_o in_o the_o excess_n of_o believe_a and_o he_o be_v a_o heretic_n who_o fall_v short_a in_o his_o faith_n by_o not_o believe_v something_o that_o be_v write_v and_o not_o he_o that_o abound_v in_o his_o faith_n by_o believe_v more_o than_o be_v write_v now_o you_o fail_v in_o that_o you_o scant_v the_o measure_n of_o your_o faith_n answer_n the_o analogy_n and_o integrity_n of_o faith_n be_v hurt_v and_o break_v by_o addition_n as_o well_o as_o subtraction_n by_o disease_n as_o well_o as_o by_o maim_n we_o be_v forbid_v 22.18_o under_o the_o same_o penalty_n either_o to_o add_v or_o diminish_v aught_o from_o god_n word_n faith_n be_v of_o the_o nature_n of_o a_o rule_n or_o certain_a measure_n to_o which_o if_o any_o thing_n be_v add_v or_o take_v from_o it_o it_o cease_v to_o be_v that_o rule_n faith_n say_v tertullian_n 14._o be_v contain_v in_o a_o rule_n to_o know_v nothing_o beyond_o it_o be_v to_o know_v all_o th●ngs_n and_o a_o little_a before_o 8._o this_o first_o of_o all_o we_o believe_v that_o no_o more_o ought_v to_o be_v believe_v as_o necessary_a to_o all_o v●rtue_n be_v in_o the_o mean●_n vice_n as_o well_o in_o the_o excess_n as_o in_o the_o defect_n in_o our_o body_n the_o superabundance_n of_o humour_n be_v as_o dangerous_a as_o lack_v of_o they_o as_o many_o dye_n of_o plethory_n as_o of_o consumption_n a_o hand_n or_o foot_n which_o have_v more_o finger_n or_o toe_n than_o ordinary_a be_v alike_o monstrous_a as_o that_o which_o want_v the_o due_a number_n a_o foundation_n may_v be_v as_o well_o overthrow_v by_o lay_v on_o it_o more_o than_o it_o will_v bear_v as_o by_o take_v away_o that_o which_o be_v necessary_a to_o support_v the_o build_n error_n of_o addition_n be_v dangerous_a as_o appear_v by_o these_o instance_n follow_v the_o samaritan_n fear_v the_o lord_n and_o serve_v their_o own_o god_n 2._o king_n 17.33_o the_o galatian_n believe_v the_o gospel_n yet_o retain_v also_o and_o observe_v the_o legal_a ceremony_n galath_n 4.9_o 85._o helvidiu●_n hold_v that_o bless_a mary_n have_v other_o child_n unto_o joseph_n her_o husband_n after_o her_o son_n jesus_n here_o be_v a_o excess_n of_o belief_n for_o he_o believe_v more_o than_o be_v reveal_v this_o opinion_n of_o helvidius_n although_o it_o be_v not_o deny_v in_o the_o scripture_n yet_o it_o be_v erroneous_a in_o as_o much_o as_o it_o be_v not_o therein_o affirm_v neither_o can_v it_o be_v thence_o deduce_v by_o any_o good_a consequence_n and_o therefore_o the_o
15._o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d eccle._n smy●n_n apud_fw-la euseb._n l._n 4._o hist._n cap._n 15_o pag._n 39_o 39_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d with_o religious_a worship_n worship_n a_o answer_n to_o the_o jesuit_n challenge_n of_o payer_n to_o saint_n pag._n 426._o 426._o nunquam_fw-la christum_fw-la relinquere_fw-la possumu●_n cristiani_fw-la neque_fw-la alterì_n cviquam_fw-la precem_fw-la orat●onis_fw-la impendere_fw-la exit_fw-la passionario_n ms._n seven_o kalend._n febr._n in_o bibliotheea_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la sarisburiensis_n &_o d●_n robert●_n cottoni_n cottoni_n v●i_fw-mi virgini●_fw-mi evae_n virgo_fw-la maria_fw-la ●ie●e●_n advoc●●a_fw-la i●en_n lib._n 5._o c._n 16._o edit_fw-la gallasij_fw-la c._n 19_o edit_n fevard_n fevard_n bellar._n l._n 1._o de_fw-fr sanct._n beat._n c._n 19_o quid_fw-la clar●us_fw-la clar●us_fw-la sicut_fw-la eva_n &_o fibi_fw-la et_fw-la universo_fw-it generi_fw-la humano_fw-la causa_fw-la facta_fw-la est_fw-la mortis_fw-la sic_fw-la &_o maria_n e●●●●i_fw-la &_o universo_fw-it generi_fw-la humano_fw-la causa_fw-la facta_fw-la est_fw-la salutis_fw-la iren._n lib._n 3._o cap._n 33._o causa_fw-la salutis_fw-la causa_fw-la pro_fw-la organo_fw-la exteriore_fw-la accipitur_fw-la n●col_n gallas_n in_o loc_n loc_n et_fw-la ●●●è_fw-la quid_fw-la allud_fw-la est_fw-la quam_fw-la exclusiva_fw-la quod_fw-la ire●au●_n habet_fw-la lib._n 4._o c._n 37.38_o non_fw-la aliter_fw-la servar●_n homines_fw-la ab_fw-la antiquà_fw-la se●pentis_fw-la plag●●_n nisi_fw-la credant_fw-la in_o cum_fw-la &c_n &c_n chemnit_fw-la loc_n theolog_fw-la de_fw-fr justif._n 2._o part_n p._n 773._o 773._o mi●i_fw-la nondum_fw-la satis_fw-la liquet_fw-la graece_fw-la ne_fw-la scripserit_fw-la a_o latin_a etiamsi_fw-la magis_fw-la arbi●●or_fw-la latin_a scripsisse_fw-la e●●●in●_n pr●fat_n in_o iren._n phrasis_n ejus_fw-la ●●en●e●_n graecismum_fw-la redolet_fw-la bellarm_n de_fw-fr scriptor_n eccles._n eccles._n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d euseb._n lib._n 4._o cap._n 15._o 15._o euseb._n hist_o lib._n 5_o ca._n ●1_n 22_o 23._o 23._o v●_n omnes_fw-la eccle●ia_fw-la a●●●_n ab_fw-la eodem_fw-la v●ctore_fw-la romano_n ●xcommunicat●●ueri●●_n bell●●_n de_fw-fr verbo_fw-la dei_fw-la lib●_n 3●_n cap._n 6._o §_o secundo_fw-la secundo_fw-la q●●d_a vic●●●_n sententiam_fw-la s●●●m_fw-la m●●●ve●it_fw-la nusquam_fw-la le●im●●_n bellarm._n lib●_n 2._o de_fw-mi p._n 〈◊〉_d c_o 19_o §●_n at_o obijcit_fw-la obijcit_fw-la euseb._n cap._n 23._o 23._o euseb._n cap._n 22._o 22._o qu●niam_fw-la ergò_fw-la papa_n vide●at_fw-la illam_fw-la diver●itatem_fw-la de_fw-la paschate_n adferre_fw-la secum_fw-la haere●in_n bellar._n de_fw-fr rom._n pont._n lib._n 2._o cap._n 19_o s._n quoniam_fw-la quoniam_fw-la haec_fw-la epistola_fw-la communiter_fw-la habetur_fw-la inter_fw-la leges_fw-la divi_z edwardi_fw-la antiquitat_fw-la britan._n pag._n 5._o in_o margin_n margin_n habetis_fw-la penes_fw-la vos_fw-la in_o regno_fw-la utramque_fw-la paginam_fw-la c●●_n illis_fw-la dei_fw-la gratia_fw-la per_fw-la concilium_fw-la regni_fw-la vestri_fw-la sumere_fw-la po●estis_fw-la legem_fw-la vicarius_fw-la verò_fw-la dei_fw-la ●●●is_fw-la in_o regno_fw-la antiquitat_fw-la britan._n p●g_v 5._o 5._o bellarminus_n lib._n 2._o de_fw-fr rom._n pont._n ca._n 19_o probare_fw-la nititur_fw-la primatum_fw-la papae●_n ex_fw-la ferendi●_n legibus_fw-la &_o censuris_fw-la censuris_fw-la dicetas_n deane_n of_o london_n a_o manuscript_n in_o the_o king_n library_n ad_fw-la ann_n 178._o allege_v by_o m._n s●●eds_n history_n of_o great_a br●tain_n book_n 6._o cap._n 9_o sect_n 18._o 18._o polychronic_n lib._n 4._o cap._n 16._o pag._n 163._o 163._o conversion_n of_o england_n 1_o part._n ch●p_n 1._o num_fw-la 25._o 25._o joseph_n ab_fw-la arimathea_n anno_fw-la ab_fw-la i●carnatione_fw-la 63._o cum_fw-la d●cem_fw-la socijs_fw-la i●_n britannia_fw-la fid●m_fw-la christi_fw-la praedicab●nt_fw-la nova_fw-la legenda_fw-la angliae_fw-la pag._n 187._o column●_n 4._o 4._o lucius_n brittaunorum_fw-la rex_fw-la literas_fw-la per_fw-la elvanum_fw-la &_o medvinum_fw-la viros_fw-la rerum_fw-la divinarum_fw-la peritos_fw-la ad_fw-la cum_fw-la mitte●at_v eleutherium_fw-la richardus_fw-la vitus_n basingstoochiensis_fw-la histor._n lib._n 5._o pag._n 1._o 1._o ad_fw-la notarium_fw-la dicere_fw-la consuevit_fw-la dam_fw-la magistrum_fw-la tertullianum_fw-la videlicet_fw-la designans_fw-la hieron_n in_o catal._n scriptor_n eccles._n eccles._n euseb._n lib._n ●_o cap._n 16._o 16._o scripturas_fw-la memoritèr_fw-la tenuit_fw-la hier._n ad_fw-la pammach_n &_o ocean_n novu●_n et_fw-la vetus_fw-la testamentum_fw-la u●lut_fw-la alter_fw-la esdras_n memor●tèr_fw-la noverat_fw-la tri●hem_n de_fw-fr scriptor_n eccles._n eccles._n septem_fw-la notarijs_fw-la potuit_fw-la dictare_fw-la trithem_n ib._n ib._n vincent_n lirinens_fw-la de_fw-fr h●res_fw-fr cap._n 23._o 23._o epiphanius_n contr●_n h●resin_n 64._o lib._n 2._o tom_n 1._o in_o ●dit_n l●●_n l●●_n amore_fw-la castitati●_n ut_fw-la mulier●bu●_n securè_fw-la auderet_fw-la pradicare_fw-la se_fw-la castrari_fw-la fecit_fw-la trithem_fw-mi de_fw-fr scriptor_n ecclesiast_n ecclesiast_n non_fw-la solum_fw-la do●●●●_n sed_fw-la etiam_fw-la do●ibilis_fw-la august_n l._n 4._o de_fw-fr baptis_n cap._n 5._o 5._o satis_fw-la f●cilimè_fw-la o●tendit_fw-la se_fw-la correctu●um_fw-la fuisse_fw-la sententiam_fw-la svam_fw-la si_fw-la quis_fw-la e●_n demonstraret_fw-la id._n ibid._n lib._n 2._o cap_n 4._o 4._o propere_a non_fw-it vidit_fw-la aliquid_fw-la ut_fw-la per_fw-la ●um_fw-la aliud_fw-la super_fw-la eminent●us_fw-la videre●ur_fw-la id._n ibid._n lib._n 1._o cap._n 18._o 18._o an_fw-mi autem_fw-la de_fw-la aliquâ_fw-la subjacenti_fw-la materiâ_fw-la f●cta_fw-la si●t_fw-la omne_fw-la ●usquam_fw-la adhuc_fw-la legi_fw-la scriptum_n esse_fw-la doceat_fw-la hermogenis_n officina_fw-la si_fw-mi non_fw-la est_fw-la scriptum_fw-la tim●a●_n vae_fw-la illud_fw-la adijci●●tibus_fw-la aut_fw-la de●rahentibus_fw-la des●inatum_fw-la tertul._n advers._fw-la hermog_n cap._n 22._o 22._o adoro_fw-la scripturae_fw-la pi●n●tudin●m_fw-la id._n ibid._n ibid._n in_o quibus_fw-la liceat_fw-la omne_fw-la verbum_fw-la quod_fw-la ad_fw-la d●um_fw-la pe●tinet_fw-la r●quiri_fw-la et_fw-la discuti_fw-la atque_fw-la ex_fw-la ip●is_fw-la om●em_fw-la rerum_fw-la scientiam_fw-la c●pi_fw-la si_fw-mi qu●d_v ●●tem_fw-la super●uerit_fw-la quod_fw-la non_fw-la divina_fw-la scriptura_fw-la decernat●_n nullam_fw-la aliam_fw-la de_fw-la bear_v terti●m_fw-la scripturam_fw-la ad_fw-la authoritatem_fw-la scientiae_fw-la suscipi_fw-la orig._n in_o levit._n homil_n 5._o tom_n 1._o 1._o euseb._n lib._n 6_o histo●_n cap●_n 24._o 24._o caro_fw-la corpore_fw-la et_fw-la sanguine_fw-la christi_fw-la ●escitur_fw-la ut_fw-la &_o anim●_n de_fw-fr deo_fw-la saginetur_fw-la tertul_n the_o resurrect_a cap._n 8._o 8._o de_fw-fr cujus_fw-la manu_fw-la d●●iderabit_fw-la de_fw-fr cujus_fw-la po●ulo_fw-la participabit_fw-la ter●ul_a lib._n ●_o ad_fw-la v●orem_fw-la cap._n 6._o 6._o populus_fw-la in_o usu_fw-la habet_fw-la sanguinem_fw-la bibere_fw-la origen_n hom_n 16._o in_o num._n num._n respondeo_fw-la habet_fw-la in_o usu_fw-la non_fw-la in_o precepto_fw-la bellar._n de_fw-fr euchar._n lib._n 4_o cap._n 26._o 26._o quomodo_n a●_n martyrij_fw-la poculum_fw-la idone●s_fw-la facimus_fw-la si_fw-la non_fw-la eos_fw-la pri●s_fw-la ad_fw-la bibendum_fw-la in_o ecclesi●_n pocu_fw-la un_fw-fr domini_fw-la jure_fw-la communicationis_fw-la admittimus_fw-la cyprian_a epist_n 54._o ●om_n 1._o lib._n 1._o epist_n 2._o in_o alijs_fw-la edit_fw-la edit_fw-la in_o calice_n domini_fw-la sanctificando_fw-la &_o plebi_fw-la ministrando_fw-la non_fw-la hoc_fw-la faciunt_fw-la quod_fw-la jesus_n christus_fw-la sacrificij_fw-la hu●us_fw-la auctor_fw-la et_fw-la doctor_n 〈◊〉_d et_fw-la do●uit_fw-la id._n epist._n 63._o lib._n 2._o ep_n 3._o 3._o nec_fw-la alibi_fw-la conjunctos_fw-la ad_fw-la sacramentum_fw-la baptismatis_fw-la &_o eucharistiae_fw-la admittens_fw-la tertul._n advers._fw-la martion_n lib._n 4._o cap._n 34._o &_o de_fw-la co●onâ_fw-la militis_fw-la cap_n 3._o 3._o censurae_fw-la inquisitionis_fw-la hispanicae_n in_o b._n rhenani_fw-la aannotationes_fw-la ad_fw-la tertullian_n prout_n edita_fw-la sunt_fw-la in_o ●udice_fw-la libror_fw-la expurgator_n jussu_fw-la quiroga_n madriti_n 1584._o ex_fw-la libro_fw-la 4._o advers._fw-la martion_n deleantur_fw-la illa_fw-la verba_fw-la baptismus_fw-la &_o eucharistia_n duo_fw-la sacramenta_fw-la primitivae_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la tertulliani_n opera_fw-la cum_fw-la c●stigat_fw-la fr._n junij_fw-la in_o bibliop_n commel●●●●●o_o 1609._o 1609._o ac_fw-la ●ptum_fw-la panem_fw-la &_o distributum_fw-la discipulis_fw-la corpus_fw-la suum_fw-la illum_fw-la fecit_fw-la hoc_fw-la est_fw-la corpus_fw-la meum_fw-la dicendo_fw-la id_fw-la est_fw-la figura_fw-la corporis_fw-la mei_fw-la figura_fw-la autem_fw-la non_fw-la fuisset_fw-la nisi_fw-la veritatis_fw-la esset_fw-la corpus_fw-la c●terum_fw-la vacua_fw-la res_fw-la quod_fw-la est_fw-la phantasma_n figuram_fw-la capere_fw-la non_fw-la posset_n tertul_n advers._fw-la martion_n lib_n 4._o cap._n 40._o 40._o rhemists_n annot._n on_o math._n 26._o chap._n sect_n 9_o 9_o master_n fisher_n in_o d._n white●_n reply_v 6_o point_n pa._n 400.401_o 400.401_o 〈…〉_z deus_fw-la in_o evangelio_n reve●avi●_n panem_fw-la corpus_fw-la suum_fw-la appellans_fw-la tertul_n con_fw-mi martion_n l_o 3_o c._n 19_o panem_fw-la quo_fw-la corpus_fw-la suum_fw-la repraesentat_fw-la ibid._n l._n 1._o c._n 14._o et_fw-la contra_fw-la judaeos_fw-la cap._n 10._o 10._o venite_fw-la mittamus_fw-la lignum_fw-la in_o ●●nem_fw-la ejus_fw-la jerem._n 11._o vtique_fw-la in_o corpus_fw-la sic_fw-la enim_fw-la de●s_fw-la in_o eu●ngelio_n panem_fw-la corpus_fw-la suum_fw-la appellancy_n ut_fw-la &_o hin●●am_fw-la eum_fw-la intellig●●_n corpori●_n svi_fw-la figuram_fw-la p●ni_fw-la dedisse_fw-la cujus_fw-la retr●_n co●poris_fw-la in_o panem_fw-la prophet_n figuravit_fw-la tertul._n l._n 3._o advers._fw-la martion_n c._n 19_o 19_o greg._n de_fw-fr valent._n in_o sum._n aquin._n tom_n 4_o disp_n 6._o the_o praes●nti●_n ch●isti_fw-la in_o euchar._n pag._n 968._o
b●adwardin_n prae●_n in_o lib._n de_fw-fr caus●_n dei_fw-la contr●_n pelagium_fw-la pelagium_fw-la aut_fw-la si_fw-la in_o aliquo_fw-la discordat_fw-la magi●_n deviat_fw-la à_fw-la catholica_fw-la veritate_fw-la quam_fw-la dic●um_fw-la ●elagij_fw-la greg._n arim._n lib._n 2._o do_v 26_o qu._n 1._o ar●_n 2._o 2._o t●emendum_fw-la mihi_fw-la videtur_fw-la negare_fw-la authorit●●em_fw-la sanctorum_fw-la ●_o contra_fw-la etiam_fw-la non_fw-la est_fw-la tutum_fw-la contraire_fw-fr ●ommuni_fw-la opinioni_fw-la &_o con●c●sioni_fw-la magistrorum_fw-la nostrorum_fw-la id._n lib._n 2._o do_v 33._o quest_n 3._o 3._o alij_fw-la enim_fw-la catholicae_fw-la seize_v religionis_fw-la tit●lo_fw-la venditantes_fw-la &_o luth●ranorum_fw-la adversarios_fw-la jactantes_fw-la du●_n arbitrij_fw-la libertatem_fw-la nimium_fw-la astruere_fw-la conantur_fw-la christi_fw-la se_fw-la gratiae_fw-la plurimum_fw-la detrahere_fw-la non_fw-la intelligunt_fw-la contaren_n de_fw-fr praedestin_n praedestin_n nam_fw-la fides_fw-la ex_fw-la diviat_fw-la verbi_fw-la auditu_fw-la r●m_fw-la 10._o v●i_fw-la vero_fw-la id_fw-la nec_fw-la legitur●_n nec_fw-la aud●tur_fw-la fidem_fw-la ●e●ire_fw-la &_o labefaclari_fw-la ne●●sse_fw-la est●_n ut_fw-la ●●diè_fw-la inquit_fw-la pro●_n dolour_n omnibus_fw-la sire_n locis_fw-la c●●nimus_fw-la espen●_n d●g●ssi●n_n in_o 1_o timoth_n lib._n 1._o cap._n 11_o ex_fw-la nicolao_n cl●m●ng_v cl●m●ng_v facilius_fw-la augiae_fw-la stabulum_fw-la quam_fw-la tal●bus_fw-la fabellis_fw-la multor●m_fw-la tum_fw-la libros_fw-la tum●_n onciones_fw-la repurge_n id_fw-la in_o poster_n epist_n ad_fw-la tim●th_n cap._n 4._o digress_v 21_o quaàm_fw-la indign_a est_fw-la divis_n &_o hominib●s_fw-la christianis_fw-la ill●_n sanctorum_fw-la historia_fw-la qua_fw-la legenda_fw-la aurea_fw-la nominatur_fw-la quam_fw-la nescio_fw-la cur_n auream_fw-la appellent_fw-la cum_fw-la scripta_fw-la sit_fw-la ab_fw-la homine_fw-la ferrei_fw-la oris_fw-la plumbei_fw-la cordis_fw-la lud._n vives_n de_fw-fr cause_n corrupt_v a●t_fw-la l._n 2._o p._n 91._o quae_fw-la de_fw-la divis_n sunt_fw-la scripta_fw-la praeter_fw-la pauca_fw-la quedam_fw-la multis_fw-la sunt_fw-la commenti●●oedata_fw-la id._n the_o tradend_n disci●linis_fw-la lib._n 5._o p●g_v 360._o majores_fw-la nostri_fw-la tantâ_fw-la licet_fw-la quanta_fw-la nos_fw-la erga_fw-la sancton_n devotione_fw-la justum_fw-la came●_n non_fw-la putarunt_fw-la tot_fw-la sanctorum_fw-la gesta_fw-la recitari_fw-la ut_fw-la legi_fw-la non_fw-la possent_fw-la sacra_fw-la utriusque_fw-la testamenti_fw-la volumina_fw-la espenc_n in_o prior_n ep_n ●d_a tim._n digress_v lib_n 1._o cap._n 11._o 11._o quoni●m_fw-la in_o universà_fw-la christian●_n republicâ_fw-la circa_fw-la haec_fw-la tanta_fw-la est_fw-la socordia_fw-la ut_fw-la multos_fw-la p●ss●m_fw-la invenias_fw-la ni●il_fw-la magis_fw-la in_o pa●ticulari_fw-la &_o explicitè_fw-fr de_fw-fr hisce_fw-la rebus_fw-la credere_fw-la quam_fw-la ethnicum_fw-la quendam_fw-la philosophum_fw-la solà_fw-fr unius_fw-la very_fw-la d●i_fw-la na●urali_fw-la cognition_n p●aeditum_fw-la navarrus_n in_o enchirid._n c._n p._n 11._o nu_fw-la 22._o 22._o act_n and_o monum_fw-la vol._n 2._o lib._n 7._o pag._n 819._o in_o henr._n 8._o 8._o a●●_n sylvi●s_n hist._n b●●●m_fw-la cap._n 13_o 13_o id_fw-la reformatur_fw-la quod_fw-la id_fw-la m●n_z substant●à_fw-la per●_n everat_fw-la a●ch●●p_n spalaten_v consil._n redit_fw-la redit_fw-la 〈…〉_z angl_n c._n sp●l●ten●_n cap._n 85._o 85._o 2_o king_n 23._o 23._o d._n v●hers_n se●mon_a at_o wansted_n pag_n 31._o 31._o d_o field_n of_o the_o church_n book_n 3._o chap._n 6._o 6._o master_n cade_n his_o justificat_fw-la of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n lib._n 1._o cap._n 1._o §_o 5._o &_o lib_n 2._o cap_n 1._o §_o 4._o 4._o codi●●m_fw-la portat_fw-la judens_fw-la undé_v credat_fw-la christianus_n librarij_fw-la rost●i_fw-la facti_fw-la sunt_fw-la quomodo_fw-la solent_fw-la ●ervi_fw-la post_fw-la domin●s_fw-la c●di●es_fw-la far_o ang._n in_o psal._n 56._o ●om_n 8._o 8._o rom._n 3.2_o act_n 15.2_o 15.2_o esai_n 1.9_o 1.9_o doctor_n field_n of_o the_o church_n book_n 3._o chap._n 6._o 6._o s●c_fw-la ecclesia_fw-la i●●rumentis_fw-la domi●i●is_fw-la conseru●ta_fw-la e●t_fw-la augus●in_n ep_n 48._o tom_n 2._o si_fw-mi concilium_fw-la in_o haeresin_fw-la la●eretur_fw-la rem●ne●ent_fw-la alij_fw-la catholici_fw-la qui_fw-la 〈◊〉_d vel_fw-la ublicè_fw-la prout_fw-la expe●●i_fw-la ●t_a and_o re●t_o 〈…〉_z orthodoxam_fw-la occh_n in_o dialog_n part_n 1._o lib._n 5._o c._n 28._o 28._o d●ctor_n chaloner_n treatise_n upon_o credo_fw-la eccl●si●n_n s._n catholic_n 2._o part_n ●●ct_n 2._o 2._o prot_n appol_n tract_n 2._o cap._n 2._o sect_n 13._o 13._o 13._o 13._o bellarm._n lib_n 3._o de_fw-mi eccles_n milit._n cap._n 13._o §_o denique_fw-la denique_fw-la ●h●m_fw-la annot._n in_o 12._o apocal._n apocal._n sic_fw-la dic●rem_fw-la in_o s●holis_fw-la s●d_a 〈◊〉_d maneat_fw-la inter_fw-la 〈◊〉_d d●u●rs●m_fw-la sertio_fw-la 〈…〉_z p●obari_fw-la ●x_fw-la sa●ris_fw-la 〈◊〉_d p●ralipo●_n ad_fw-la a●●at_fw-la vrsp●rg_fw-mi pag._n 448_o edit_n b●sil_n 1569._o prot._n apol._n track_v 2._o cap._n 2._o sect_n 2._o pag._n 3●●_n d●ctor_n field_n of_o the_o church_n 〈◊〉_d second_o edition_n in_o h●s_n appendix_n to_o the_o three_o book_n ox●o●d_a 16●8_n 16●8_n mi●●ale_a eccles._n sarisbur●in_v cano●●_n cano●●_n c●ss●●der_n consult_v de_fw-fr solita●ia_fw-fr m●ss●●_n m●ss●●_n cassander_n in_o consult_v d●_n utr●que_fw-la specie_fw-la specie_fw-la 〈…〉_z epist_n 64_o in_o tom_n 12._o biblioth_n p●●_n pag_n 3●●_n colon._n 1618._o 1618._o offering_n quid●●_n sed_fw-la 〈…〉_z amb._n o●_n in_o h●b●_n 10._o 10._o 〈…〉_z chrysos_n in_fw-it heb_n 〈…〉_z 17._o 17._o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d et_fw-la oblationem_fw-la qui●_n 〈◊〉_d est_fw-la &_o 〈…〉_z quotid●●_n autem_fw-la 〈…〉_z sacramento_n quia_fw-la in_o sacramento_fw-la 〈…〉_z illius_fw-la quoth_v 〈…〉_z pet._n 〈…〉_z sem_fw-mi lib._n 4_o dist._n 12._o li●_n ●●_o ●●_o 〈…〉_z in_o heb_n 10._o ca._n ca._n g●●g_v wi●●lius_n in_o 〈…〉_z d._n field_n field_n enchir●d_a col●ni●nse_n de_fw-fr euch●r_fw-fr t●ste_a coa●m_n coa●m_n doctor_n fields_n ap●ndix_n to_o th●_n fi●th_v book_n part_n 3._o p●g_n 11._o 11._o sicid_n in_o com._n lib._n 6._o ad_fw-la ann_n 1529._o 1529._o act_n 11.26_o 11.26_o 1_o co●inth_n 1.13_o 1.13_o 〈…〉_z sed_fw-la cath●●●●●_n non_fw-la ●st_fw-la ●●tat_fw-la lib._n 3._o 3._o act_n 17.27.28_o 17.27.28_o 〈…〉_z p_o 39_o 39_o 〈…〉_z isidor_n origin_n lib_n 8_o cap._n 5._o 5._o 〈…〉_z ●9_n ●9_n ●9_n ●9_n 〈…〉_z 6._o sect_n 4._o 4._o 4._o 4._o 2_o cor._n 1.24_o 1.24_o praec●pi●u●_n ut_fw-la quilibet_fw-la sacerdos_fw-la quater_fw-la in_o anno_fw-la exponat_fw-la populo_fw-la vulgariter_fw-la fourteen_o ●idei_fw-la articulo●_n decem_fw-la mand●ta_fw-la decalogi_fw-la et_fw-la septem_fw-la gratiae_fw-la sacramenta_fw-la provincial_n constitut._n angliae_fw-la apud_fw-la gul._n lindewood_n lib_n 1._o ignorantia_fw-la sacerdot_n vulgariter_fw-la in_o linguá_fw-la ma●e●n●_n &_o vulgari_fw-la a●glicâ_fw-la videli●et_fw-la anglicis_fw-la gallicâ_fw-la gallicis_fw-la glossa_fw-la ibidem_fw-la in_o a_o council_n at_o cliff_n anno_o 747_o it_o be_v decree_v th●t_v the_o lord_n prayer_n &_o creed_n shall_v be_v read_v and_o teach_v in_o the_o english_a tongue_n malmesb_n de_fw-fr gest_n pont._n lib._n 1._o 1._o apostolus_fw-la specialiter_fw-la d●●it_fw-la se_fw-la velle_fw-la loqui_fw-la quinque_fw-la verba_fw-la quia_fw-la predicatores_fw-la d●●ent_fw-la annun●iare_fw-la quinque_fw-la s●●luet_fw-la credenda_fw-la agenda_fw-la vitanda_fw-la t●mend●_n sper●nda_n qui●_n p●●d●catio_fw-la d●b●t_fw-la esse_fw-la de_fw-fr ●ijs_fw-la quae_fw-la pertine●●●●d_fw-la s●dem_fw-la &_o sic_fw-la hab●t●r_fw-la primum_fw-la &_o de_fw-la hijs_fw-la qu●_n per●●ne●t_fw-la ad_fw-la ●o●es_fw-la et_fw-la sic_fw-la habentur_fw-la quatu●r●_n virtutes_fw-la &_o vit●a_fw-la p●na_fw-la &_o gloria_fw-la lyra_n in_o 1_o cor._n c._n 14_o scriptura_fw-la 〈◊〉_d unter_z continet_fw-la doc●●inam_fw-la necessariam_fw-la viatori_fw-la quantum_fw-la ad_fw-la credenda_fw-la sp●randa_fw-la &_o operand●_n scotus_n 1_o sent._n prolog_n cue_n 2._o 2._o act_n and_o monum_fw-la vol._n 2._o book_n 8._o pag._n 1124._o ad_fw-la ann_n 1538._o 1538._o ibid._n lib._n 11._o p._n 1788._o ad_fw-la ann._n 1555._o 1555._o servanda_fw-la est_fw-la totiu●_n seculi_fw-la fides_fw-la &_o sequendi_fw-la sunt_fw-la nobis_fw-la parent_n qui_fw-la secuti_fw-la sunt_fw-la faeliciter_fw-la suos_fw-la amb●os_n epistol_n lib._n 2._o tom_n 5._o 5._o ezech._n 20.18_o 20.18_o 1_o pet._n 1.18_o 1.18_o hoc_fw-la inquies_fw-la majo●es_fw-la nostri_fw-la à_fw-la suis_fw-la parentibus_fw-la accepe●●●t_fw-la respondetur_fw-la sed_fw-la errantes_fw-la ab_fw-la errantibu●_n aut_fw-la calumniantibus_fw-la aug._n cont_n crescon_n grama●at_fw-la li._n 3_o c._n 33._o tom_n 7._o 7._o si_fw-mi quis_fw-la de_fw-la an●ecesso_fw-la 〈…〉_z vel_fw-la ●●noran●èt_fw-la vel_fw-la simplicitèr_fw-la non_fw-la hoc_fw-la obser●avit_fw-la &_o t●nuit_fw-la quod_fw-la n●s_o d●mi●us_fw-la f●cere_fw-la exem●●o_fw-la &_o m●gist●rio_fw-la svo_fw-la doc●it_fw-la potest_fw-la simplicitati_fw-la e●us_fw-la de_fw-la ind●lgentia_fw-la domini_fw-la 〈◊〉_d ●o●●edi_fw-la nobis_fw-la ver●_n non_fw-la po●erit_fw-la ignos●s_fw-la qui_fw-la nu●c_fw-la à_fw-la domino_fw-la ad●oniti_fw-la &_o inst●u●li_fw-la ●umas_fw-la cyprian_n epist_n 63._o pan●el_n num_fw-la 13._o in_o ali●_n edit_fw-la lib._n 2._o epist_n 3._o 3._o alla_fw-mi ●●usa_fw-la est_fw-la ●orum_fw-la qui_fw-la in_o istos_fw-la haereticos_fw-la imprudentèr_fw-la in●urrunt_fw-la ipsam_fw-la esse_fw-la christi_fw-la e●clesiam_fw-la ex●stimante●_n alia_fw-la co●um_fw-la qui_fw-la noverunt_fw-la non_fw-la ●sse_fw-la catholic●n_fw-la augustin_n de_fw-fr bap●_n 〈◊〉_d donat._n cap._n 4._o 4._o qui_fw-la se●tentiam_fw-la svam_fw-la 〈…〉_z ●als●m_o ac_fw-la perversam_fw-la n●ll●_n pe●tinaci_fw-la anim●sit●te_fw-la defendunt_fw-la praesert●●_n quam_fw-la non_fw-la auda●●●_n presumptionis_fw-la ●ue_v pepere●unt_fw-la seda_fw-la seductis_fw-la atque_fw-la